Canonum de Lex Ecclesium
Canonum de Lex Ecclesium
Canonum de Lex Ecclesium
This pdf is produced by automated means on an automated schedule. Should any difference in text
arise from this extract and the Canons at one-heaven.org, the Canons at one-heaven.org should be
relied upon for authenticity. In that event you may also wish to download a new copy of the pdf (if
possible).
Table of Content
Table of Content 2
I. Introductory provisions 17
1.1 Introductory Provisions 17
Article 1 - Canons of Ecclesiastical Law 17
Article 2 - Ecclesiastical Law 18
C anon 3430 18
C anon 3431 18
C anon 3432 18
C anon 3433 18
C anon 3434 18
C anon 3435 18
C anon 3436 18
C anon 3437 18
1.2 Concepts 19
Article 3 - Supernatural 19
C anon 3438 19
C anon 3439 19
C anon 3440 19
C anon 3441 19
C anon 3442 19
Article 4 - Magic 20
C anon 3443 20
C anon 3444 20
C anon 3445 20
C anon 3446 20
C anon 3447 20
C anon 3448 20
C anon 3449 20
C anon 3450 20
C anon 3451 20
C anon 3452 20
C anon 3453 21
C anon 3454 21
C anon 3455 21
C anon 3456 21
C anon 3457 21
Article 5 - Occult 22
C anon 3458 22
C anon 3459 22
C anon 3460 22
C anon 3461 22
C anon 3462 22
C anon 3463 22
Article 6 - Duality 23
C anon 3464 23
C anon 3465 23
C anon 3466 23
C anon 3467 23
C anon 3468 23
C anon 3469 23
Article 7 - Trinity 24
C anon 3470 24
C anon 3471 24
C anon 3472 24
C anon 3473 24
C anon 3474 24
C anon 3475 24
C anon 3476 24
Article 8 - Sacred 25
C anon 3477 25
C anon 3478 25
C anon 3479 25
C anon 3480 25
C anon 3481 25
C anon 3482 25
Article 9 - Faith 26
C anon 3483 26
C anon 3484 26
C anon 3485 26
C anon 3486 26
C anon 3487 26
C anon 3488 26
C anon 3489 26
Article 10 - Religion 27
C anon 3490 27
C anon 3491 27
C anon 3492 27
C anon 3493 27
C anon 3494 27
C anon 3495 27
C anon 3496 27
Article 11 - Cult 28
C anon 3497 28
C anon 3498 28
C anon 3499 28
C anon 3500 28
C anon 3501 28
C anon 3502 28
C anon 3503 28
C anon 3504 28
Article 12 - Minister 29
C anon 3505 29
C anon 3506 29
C anon 3507 29
C anon 3508 29
C anon 3509 29
C anon 3510 29
C anon 3511 29
C anon 3512 29
C anon 3513 29
C anon 3514 30
C anon 3515 30
C anon 3516 30
C anon 3517 30
C anon 3518 30
C anon 3519 30
Article 13 - Clergy 31
C anon 3520 31
C anon 3521 31
C anon 3522 31
C anon 3523 31
C anon 3524 31
Article 14 - Initiate 32
C anon 3525 32
C anon 3526 32
C anon 3527 32
C anon 3528 32
C anon 3529 32
C anon 3530 32
C anon 3531 32
Article 15 - Cultor 33
C anon 3532 33
C anon 3533 33
C anon 3534 33
C anon 3535 33
C anon 3536 33
C anon 3537 33
Article 16 - Cretin 34
C anon 3538 34
C anon 3539 34
C anon 3540 34
C anon 3541 34
C anon 3542 34
C anon 3543 34
Article 17 - Fanatic 35
C anon 3544 35
C anon 3545 35
C anon 3546 35
C anon 3547 35
C anon 3548 35
C anon 3549 35
Article 18 - Bigot 36
C anon 3550 36
C anon 3551 36
C anon 3552 36
C anon 3553 36
C anon 3554 36
C anon 3555 36
C anon 3556 36
Article 19 - Racist 37
C anon 3557 37
C anon 3558 37
C anon 3559 37
C anon 3560 37
C anon 3561 37
C anon 3562 37
C anon 3563 37
Article 20 - AntiSemite 38
C anon 3564 38
C anon 3565 38
C anon 3566 38
C anon 3567 38
C anon 3568 38
Article 21 - See 39
C anon 3569 39
C anon 3570 39
C anon 3571 39
C anon 3572 39
C anon 3573 39
C anon 3574 39
C anon 3575 39
Article 22 - Altar 40
C anon 3576 40
C anon 3577 40
C anon 3578 40
C anon 3579 40
C anon 3580 40
C anon 3581 40
C anon 3582 40
C anon 3583 40
C anon 3584 40
C anon 3585 40
C anon 3586 41
C anon 3587 41
Article 23 - Sanctuary 42
C anon 3588 42
C anon 3589 42
C anon 3590 42
Article 24 - Oratory 43
C anon 3591 43
C anon 3592 43
C anon 3593 43
C anon 3594 43
C anon 3595 43
C anon 3596 43
C anon 3597 43
C anon 3598 43
C anon 3599 43
Article 25 - Temple 44
C anon 3600 44
C anon 3601 44
C anon 3602 44
C anon 3603 44
C anon 3604 44
C anon 3605 44
C anon 3606 44
C anon 3607 44
C anon 3608 44
C anon 3609 44
C anon 3610 44
C anon 3611 44
C anon 3612 45
C anon 3613 45
C anon 3614 45
C anon 3615 45
C anon 3616 45
Article 26 - Basilica 46
C anon 3617 46
C anon 3618 46
C anon 3619 46
II. Supernatural 48
2.1 Supernatural Dimension 48
Article 27 - Unique Collective Awareness 48
C anon 3620 48
C anon 3621 48
C anon 3622 48
C anon 3623 48
C anon 3624 48
Article 28 - Afterlife 49
C anon 3625 49
C anon 3626 49
Article 29 - Heaven 50
C anon 3627 50
C anon 3628 50
C anon 3629 50
C anon 3630 50
C anon 3631 50
C anon 3632 50
C anon 3633 50
C anon 3634 50
Article 30 - Hell 51
C anon 3635 51
C anon 3636 51
C anon 3637 51
C anon 3638 51
C anon 3639 51
C anon 3640 51
C anon 3641 51
Article 31 - Purgatory 52
C anon 3642 52
C anon 3643 52
C anon 3644 52
C anon 3645 52
C anon 3646 52
2.2 Supernatural Entity 53
Article 32 - Deity 53
C anon 3647 53
C anon 3648 53
C anon 3649 53
C anon 3650 53
C anon 3651 53
C anon 3652 53
C anon 3653 53
C anon 3654 53
C anon 3655 53
Article 33 - God 54
C anon 3656 54
C anon 3657 54
C anon 3658 54
C anon 3659 54
C anon 3660 54
C anon 3661 54
C anon 3662 54
C anon 3663 54
C anon 3664 54
C anon 3665 54
C anon 3666 55
C anon 3667 55
Article 34 - Divine Creator 56
C anon 3668 56
C anon 3669 56
C anon 3670 56
C anon 3671 56
C anon 3672 56
C anon 3673 56
C anon 3674 56
C anon 3675 56
Article 35 - UCADIA 57
C anon 3676 57
C anon 3677 57
C anon 3678 57
C anon 3679 57
C anon 3680 57
Article 36 - Soul 58
C anon 3681 58
C anon 3682 58
C anon 3683 58
C anon 3684 58
C anon 3685 58
C anon 3686 58
C anon 3687 58
Article 37 - Angel 59
C anon 3688 59
C anon 3689 59
C anon 3690 59
C anon 3691 59
C anon 3692 59
C anon 3693 59
Article 38 - Demon 60
C anon 3694 60
C anon 3695 60
C anon 3696 60
C anon 3697 60
C anon 3698 60
C anon 3699 60
C anon 3700 60
C anon 3701 60
Article 39 - Spirit 61
C anon 3702 61
C anon 3703 61
Article 40 - Ghost 62
C anon 3704 62
C anon 3705 62
C anon 3706 62
C anon 3707 62
C anon 3708 62
C anon 3709 62
C anon 3710 62
C anon 3711 62
C anon 3712 62
C anon 3713 62
C anon 3714 62
C anon 3715 63
C anon 3716 63
Article 41 - Lord 64
C anon 3717 64
C anon 3718 64
C anon 3719 64
C anon 3720 64
C anon 3721 64
C anon 3722 64
2.3 Supernatural Phenomena 65
Article 42 - Miracle 65
C anon 3723 65
C anon 3724 65
C anon 3725 65
C anon 3726 65
C anon 3727 65
C anon 3728 65
C anon 3729 65
C anon 3730 65
C anon 3731 65
C anon 3732 65
C anon 3733 66
C anon 3734 66
C anon 3735 66
Article 43 - Precognition 67
C anon 3736 67
C anon 3737 67
C anon 3738 67
C anon 3739 67
C anon 3740 67
C anon 3741 67
Article 44 - Aura 68
C anon 3742 68
C anon 3743 68
C anon 3744 68
C anon 3745 68
C anon 3746 68
Article 45 - Poltergeist 69
C anon 3747 69
C anon 3748 69
C anon 3749 69
C anon 3750 69
C anon 3751 69
C anon 3752 69
C anon 3753 69
Article 46 - Conjuration 70
C anon 3754 70
C anon 3755 70
C anon 3756 70
C anon 3757 70
C anon 3758 70
C anon 3759 70
C anon 3760 70
C anon 3761 70
C anon 3762 70
C anon 3763 70
C anon 3764 71
Article 47 - Levitation 72
C anon 3765 72
C anon 3766 72
C anon 3767 72
C anon 3768 72
C anon 3769 72
C anon 3770 72
Article 48 - Possession 73
C anon 3771 73
C anon 3772 73
C anon 3773 73
C anon 3774 73
C anon 3775 73
C anon 3776 73
C anon 3777 73
C anon 3778 73
C anon 3779 73
Article 49 - Voices 74
C anon 3780 74
C anon 3781 74
C anon 3782 74
C anon 3783 74
C anon 3784 74
Article 50 - Haunting 75
C anon 3785 75
C anon 3786 75
C anon 3787 75
C anon 3788 75
C anon 3789 75
C anon 3790 75
C anon 3791 75
C anon 3792 75
C anon 3793 75
C anon 3794 75
2.4 Supernatural Ability 76
Article 51 - Psychic 76
C anon 3795 76
C anon 3796 76
C anon 3797 76
Article 52 - Clairvoyance 77
C anon 3798 77
C anon 3799 77
C anon 3800 77
C anon 3801 77
C anon 3802 77
C anon 3803 77
C anon 3804 77
C anon 3805 77
C anon 3806 77
Article 53 - Mediumship 78
C anon 3807 78
C anon 3808 78
C anon 3809 78
C anon 3810 78
C anon 3811 78
C anon 3812 78
Article 54 - Healing 79
C anon 3813 79
C anon 3814 79
C anon 3815 79
C anon 3816 79
Article 55 - Remote Viewing 80
C anon 3817 80
C anon 3818 80
C anon 3819 80
C anon 3820 80
C anon 3821 80
C anon 3822 80
C anon 3823 80
C anon 3824 80
Article 56 - Telepathy 81
C anon 3825 81
C anon 3826 81
C anon 3827 81
C anon 3828 81
C anon 3829 81
C anon 3830 81
C anon 3831 81
C anon 3832 81
C anon 3833 81
C anon 3834 81
C anon 3835 82
C anon 3836 82
C anon 3837 82
Article 57 - Psychometry 83
C anon 3838 83
C anon 3839 83
C anon 3840 83
C anon 3841 83
C anon 3842 83
C anon 3843 83
Article 58 - Psychokinesis 84
C anon 3844 84
C anon 3845 84
C anon 3846 84
C anon 3847 84
C anon 3848 84
C anon 3849 84
C anon 3850 84
C anon 3851 84
III. Sacred 86
3.1 Sacred Form 86
Article 59 - Sacred Numeracy 86
C anon 3852 86
C anon 3853 86
C anon 3854 86
C anon 3855 86
Article 60 - Sacred Geometry 87
C anon 3856 87
C anon 3857 87
C anon 3858 87
C anon 3859 87
C anon 3860 87
C anon 3861 87
C anon 3862 87
C anon 3863 87
C anon 3864 87
Article 61 - Sacred Symbols 88
C anon 3865 88
C anon 3866 88
C anon 3867 88
C anon 3868 88
C anon 3869 88
C anon 3870 88
C anon 3871 88
C anon 3872 88
C anon 3873 88
Article 62 - Sacred Places 89
C anon 3874 89
C anon 3875 89
C anon 3876 89
C anon 3877 89
C anon 3878 89
C anon 3879 89
C anon 3880 89
Article 63 - Sacred Art 90
C anon 3881 90
C anon 3882 90
C anon 3883 90
C anon 3884 90
C anon 3885 90
C anon 3886 90
Article 64 - Sacred Texts 91
C anon 3887 91
C anon 3888 91
C anon 3889 91
C anon 3890 91
C anon 3891 91
C anon 3892 91
C anon 3893 91
Article 65 - Sacred Rites 92
C anon 3894 92
C anon 3895 92
C anon 3896 92
C anon 3897 92
C anon 3898 92
C anon 3899 92
Article 66 - Sacred Office 93
C anon 3900 93
C anon 3901 93
C anon 3902 93
Article 67 - Sacred Mysteries 94
C anon 3903 94
C anon 3904 94
C anon 3905 94
C anon 3906 94
C anon 3907 94
C anon 3908 94
C anon 3909 94
Article 68 - Sacred Architecture 95
C anon 3910 95
C anon 3911 95
C anon 3912 95
C anon 3913 95
C anon 3914 95
Article 69 - Sacred Music 96
C anon 3915 96
C anon 3916 96
C anon 3917 96
C anon 3918 96
C anon 3919 96
C anon 3920 96
C anon 3921 96
C anon 3922 96
C anon 3923 96
C anon 3924 96
Article 70 - Sacred Language 97
C anon 3925 97
C anon 3926 97
C anon 3927 97
C anon 3928 97
C anon 3929 97
C anon 3930 97
C anon 3931 97
Article 71 - Sacred Dance 98
C anon 3932 98
C anon 3933 98
C anon 3934 98
Article 72 - Sacred Drugs 99
C anon 3935 99
C anon 3936 99
C anon 3937 99
C anon 3938 99
C anon 3939 99
C anon 3940 99
C anon 3941 99
C anon 3942 99
C anon 3943 99
C anon 3944 99
C anon 3945 100
C anon 3946 100
C anon 3947 100
C anon 3948 100
Article 73 - Sacred Food 101
C anon 3949 101
C anon 3950 101
C anon 3951 101
C anon 3952 101
C anon 3953 101
C anon 3954 101
C anon 3955 101
C anon 3956 101
Article 74 - Sacred Clothes 102
C anon 3957 102
C anon 3958 102
C anon 3959 102
C anon 3960 102
C anon 3961 102
C anon 3962 102
C anon 3963 102
C anon 3964 102
C anon 3965 102
Article 75 - Sacred Oration 103
C anon 3966 103
C anon 3967 103
C anon 3968 103
C anon 3969 103
3.2 Revelation 104
Article 76 - Revelation 104
C anon 3970 104
C anon 3971 104
C anon 3972 104
C anon 3973 104
C anon 3974 104
C anon 3975 104
C anon 3976 104
C anon 3977 104
C anon 3978 104
C anon 3979 104
C anon 3980 105
C anon 3981 105
C anon 3982 105
Article 77 - Vision 106
C anon 3983 106
C anon 3984 106
C anon 3985 106
C anon 3986 106
C anon 3987 106
Article 78 - Dream 107
C anon 3988 107
C anon 3989 107
C anon 3990 107
C anon 3991 107
C anon 3992 107
C anon 3993 107
C anon 3994 107
3.3 Holiness 108
Article 79 - Holy 108
C anon 3995 108
C anon 3996 108
C anon 3997 108
C anon 3998 108
C anon 3999 108
C anon 4000 108
C anon 4001 108
C anon 4002 108
Article 80 - Holly 109
C anon 4003 109
C anon 4004 109
C anon 4005 109
C anon 4006 109
C anon 4007 109
C anon 4008 109
C anon 4009 109
C anon 4010 109
C anon 4011 109
C anon 4012 109
C anon 4013 110
C anon 4014 110
C anon 4015 110
C anon 4016 110
C anon 4017 110
C anon 4018 110
Article 81 - Prophet 111
C anon 4019 111
C anon 4020 111
C anon 4021 111
C anon 4022 111
C anon 4023 111
Article 82 - Savior 112
C anon 4024 112
C anon 4025 112
C anon 4026 112
C anon 4027 112
C anon 4028 112
C anon 4029 112
C anon 4030 112
C anon 4031 112
C anon 4032 112
C anon 4033 112
Article 83 - Messiah 113
C anon 4034 113
C anon 4035 113
C anon 4036 113
C anon 4037 113
C anon 4038 113
C anon 4039 113
C anon 4040 113
Article 84 - Saint 114
C anon 4041 114
C anon 4042 114
C anon 4043 114
C anon 4044 114
C anon 4045 114
C anon 4046 114
C anon 4047 114
3.4 Sacrilege and UnHoliness 115
Article 85 - Sacrilege 115
C anon 4048 115
C anon 4049 115
C anon 4050 115
C anon 4051 115
C anon 4052 115
C anon 4053 115
C anon 4054 115
Article 86 - Blasphemy 116
C anon 4055 116
C anon 4056 116
C anon 4057 116
C anon 4058 116
C anon 4059 116
Article 87 - Impiety 117
C anon 4060 117
C anon 4061 117
C anon 4062 117
C anon 4063 117
C anon 4064 117
Article 88 - Unholy 118
C anon 4065 118
C anon 4066 118
C anon 4067 118
C anon 4068 118
Article 89 - Spell 119
C anon 4069 119
C anon 4070 119
C anon 4071 119
C anon 4072 119
C anon 4073 119
C anon 4074 119
C anon 4075 119
C anon 4076 119
C anon 4077 119
C anon 4078 119
Article 90 - Curse 120
C anon 4079 120
C anon 4080 120
C anon 4081 120
C anon 4082 120
C anon 4083 120
C anon 4084 120
C anon 4085 120
C anon 4086 120
Article 91 - Molestation 121
C anon 4087 121
C anon 4088 121
C anon 4089 121
C anon 4090 121
C anon 4091 121
C anon 4092 121
Article 92 - Celibacy 122
C anon 4093 122
C anon 4094 122
C anon 4095 122
C anon 4096 122
C anon 4097 122
C anon 4098 122
C anon 4099 122
Article 93 - Blood Sacrifice 123
C anon 4100 123
C anon 4101 123
C anon 4102 123
C anon 4103 123
C anon 4104 123
C anon 4105 123
C anon 4106 123
C anon 4107 123
C anon 4108 123
C anon 4109 123
C anon 4110 124
Article 94 - Holocaust 125
C anon 4111 125
C anon 4112 125
C anon 4113 125
C anon 4114 125
C anon 4115 125
C anon 4116 125
C anon 4117 125
C anon 4118 125
Article 95 - Cannibalism 126
C anon 4119 126
C anon 4120 126
C anon 4121 126
C anon 4122 126
C anon 4123 126
C anon 4124 126
C anon 4125 126
C anon 4126 126
Article 96 - Necromancy 127
C anon 4127 127
C anon 4128 127
C anon 4129 127
C anon 4130 127
C anon 4131 127
C anon 4132 127
C anon 4133 127
C anon 4134 127
Article 97 - Evil 128
C anon 4135 128
C anon 4136 128
C anon 4137 128
C anon 4138 128
C anon 4139 128
C anon 4140 128
V. Sacraments 174
5.1 Sacraments 174
Article 133 - Sacrament 174
C anon 4348 174
C anon 4349 174
C anon 4350 174
C anon 4351 174
C anon 4352 174
C anon 4353 174
C anon 4354 174
C anon 4355 175
C anon 4356 175
C anon 4357 175
C anon 4358 175
C anon 4359 175
C anon 4360 175
Article 134 - Act 176
C anon 4361 176
C anon 4362 176
C anon 4363 176
C anon 4364 176
Article 135 - Part 177
C anon 4365 177
C anon 4366 177
C anon 4367 177
Article 136 - Moment 178
C anon 4368 178
C anon 4369 178
Article 137 - Celebrant 179
C anon 4370 179
C anon 4371 179
Article 138 - Participant 180
C anon 4372 180
C anon 4373 180
Article 139 - Observant 181
C anon 4374 181
C anon 4375 181
C anon 4376 181
C anon 4377 181
C anon 4378 181
Article 140 - Event 182
C anon 4379 182
C anon 4380 182
Article 141 - Memorial 183
C anon 4381 183
C anon 4382 183
C anon 4383 183
Article 142 - Obsignation 184
C anon 4384 184
C anon 4385 184
5.2 Key Sacraments 185
Article 143 - Key Sacraments 185
C anon 4386 185
C anon 4387 185
C anon 4388 185
C anon 4389 185
C anon 4390 185
C anon 4391 185
C anon 4392 185
Article 144 - Recognition 186
C anon 4393 186
C anon 4394 186
C anon 4395 186
Article 145 - Trust 187
C anon 4396 187
C anon 4397 187
C anon 4398 187
Article 146 - Obligation 188
C anon 4399 188
C anon 4400 188
C anon 4401 188
Article 147 - Inspiration 189
C anon 4402 189
C anon 4403 189
C anon 4404 189
Article 148 - Forgiveness 190
C anon 4405 190
C anon 4406 190
C anon 4407 190
Article 149 - Satisfaction 191
C anon 4408 191
C anon 4409 191
C anon 4410 191
Article 150 - Expiration 192
C anon 4411 192
C anon 4412 192
C anon 4413 192
5.3 Cardinal Sacraments 193
Article 151 - Cardinal Sacraments 193
C anon 4414 193
C anon 4415 193
C anon 4416 193
C anon 4417 193
C anon 4418 193
C anon 4419 193
C anon 4420 193
C anon 4421 193
C anon 4422 193
Article 152 - Consecration 194
C anon 4423 194
C anon 4424 194
C anon 4425 194
C anon 4426 194
Article 153 - Offering 195
Article 153 - Offering 195
C anon 4427 195
C anon 4428 195
C anon 4429 195
C anon 4430 195
Article 154 - Matrimony 196
C anon 4431 196
C anon 4432 196
C anon 4433 196
Article 155 - Union 197
C anon 4434 197
C anon 4435 197
C anon 4436 197
Article 156 - Record 198
C anon 4437 198
C anon 4438 198
C anon 4439 198
Article 157 - Penance 199
C anon 4440 199
C anon 4441 199
C anon 4442 199
Article 158 - Oath 200
C anon 4443 200
C anon 4444 200
C anon 4445 200
Article 159 - Testimony 201
C anon 4446 201
C anon 4447 201
C anon 4448 201
Article 160 - Investiture 202
C anon 4449 202
C anon 4450 202
C anon 4451 202
Article 161 - Clemency 203
C anon 4452 203
C anon 4453 203
C anon 4454 203
Article 162 - Sponsor 204
C anon 4455 204
C anon 4456 204
C anon 4457 204
Article 163 - Convocation 205
C anon 4458 205
C anon 4459 205
C anon 4460 205
Article 164 - Prescription 206
C anon 4461 206
C anon 4462 206
C anon 4463 206
Article 165 - Rescription 207
C anon 4464 207
C anon 4465 207
C anon 4466 207
5.4 Apostolic Sacraments 208
Article 166 - Apostolic Sacraments 208
C anon 4467 208
C anon 4468 208
C anon 4469 208
C anon 4470 208
C anon 4471 208
C anon 4472 208
C anon 4473 208
C anon 4474 208
C anon 4475 208
C anon 4476 208
C anon 4477 209
Article 167 - Annunciation 210
C anon 4478 210
C anon 4479 210
C anon 4480 210
C anon 4481 210
C anon 4482 210
C anon 4483 210
Article 168 - Natal 211
C anon 4484 211
C anon 4485 211
C anon 4486 211
C anon 4487 211
C anon 4488 211
C anon 4489 211
C anon 4490 211
C anon 4491 211
C anon 4492 211
C anon 4493 211
C anon 4494 211
Article 169 - Divinus 212
C anon 4495 212
C anon 4496 212
C anon 4497 212
C anon 4498 212
C anon 4499 212
Article 170 - Adventus 213
C anon 4500 213
C anon 4501 213
C anon 4502 213
C anon 4503 213
C anon 4504 213
C anon 4505 213
C anon 4506 213
Article 171 - Epinoia 214
C anon 4507 214
C anon 4508 214
C anon 4509 214
C anon 4510 214
C anon 4511 214
C anon 4512 214
Article 172 - Genius 215
C anon 4513 215
C anon 4514 215
C anon 4515 215
C anon 4516 215
Article 173 - Beau Ideal 216
C anon 4517 216
C anon 4518 216
C anon 4519 216
C anon 4520 216
Article 174 - Haga Sofia 217
C anon 4521 217
C anon 4522 217
C anon 4523 217
C anon 4524 217
Article 175 - Adieu 218
C anon 4525 218
C anon 4526 218
C anon 4527 218
C anon 4528 218
Article 176 - Resolution 219
C anon 4529 219
C anon 4530 219
C anon 4531 219
C anon 4532 219
Article 177 - Remembrance 220
C anon 4533 220
C anon 4534 220
C anon 4535 220
C anon 4536 220
Article 178 - Veneration 221
C anon 4537 221
C anon 4538 221
C anon 4539 221
i. By Right, Power and Authority of Article ninety-three (93) of Pactum De Singularis Caelum, also
known as the Covenant of One Heaven these pronouncements of law known collectively as Canonum
De Lex Ecclesium and also known as the Canons of Ecclesiastical Law are hereby promulgated in the
original form of Ucadian Language; and
ii. The Canonum De Lex Ecclesium represents the primary, one and only true first canon of
Ecclesiastical Law. Excluding the Covenant of One Heaven, all other laws, claims and agreements
claiming standards of Ecclesiastical Law shall be secondary and inferior to the Canonum De Lex
Ecclesium ab initio (from the beginning); and
iii. These Canons of Ecclesiastical Law may be taken in official original document form and spoken
form to represent one (1) complete set of the twenty-two (22) Canons of law known collectively as
Astrum Iuris Divini Canonum, also known as Living Body of Divine Canon Law and the highest of all
Original Law; and
iv. When referring to these Canons of Ecclesiastical Law collectively it may also be taken both in
printed form and spoken word that we mean this complete and accurate set of laws as the highest of
all Original Law; and
v. In accordance with these Canons of Ecclesiastical Law, the Society of One Heaven also known as
the One Heaven Society of United Spirits, also known as the Holy See of United Spirits, also known as
The Holy Society reserves all rights to itself; and
vi. As all rights are reserved, no translation, copy, citation, duplication, registration in part or whole
implies any transfer or conveyance of these rights; and
vii. When part or all of these laws is presented or spoken in any language other than the Official
Ucadian Languages, it may be taken as a translation and not the primary language. Therefore, any
secondary meaning implying deficiency, claimed abrogation of any right or any other defect of a word
in a translated language shall be null and void ab initio (from the beginning); and
viii. When referring to these Canons of Ecclesiastical Law collectively it may also be taken that the
primary and original form of these laws resides as a supernatural spiritual document registered in
Heaven first and a physical document registered in the Great Register and Public Record of One
Heaven upon the Earth second. Therefore, wherever an official and valid form of these laws is present
in physical form, it shall be bound to its spiritual form, from which it derives its spiritual power and
authenticity; and
ix. Let no man, woman, spirit or officer of a lesser society place themselves in grave dishonor of
Divine Law, Natural Law and the Living Law upon denying the validity of these canons of law. Having
been warned, any act in defiance of these laws shall have no effect and any spiritual invocation in
opposition to the validity of these laws shall be immediately returned upon the maker. As it is written,
so be it.
Art icle 2 - Ecclesiast ical Law
Canon 3430
No law is valid, or has any authority or force or effect as Ecclesiastical Law or any other law
description unless it conforms to the body of Canon laws preceding this Canon known as Astrum Iuris
Divini Canonum in accordance with Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Canon 3431
Ecclesiastical Law is the body of statutes and ordinances of an ecclesiastical entity issued by proper
authority in accordance with these canons for the moderation of a religious organization and its
members. As valid Ecclesiastical Law is in accordance with these Canons, the word canon is
equivalent to describing valid Ecclesiastical Law.
Canon 3432
Any law claiming to be Canon or Ecclesiastical presently in force which is contrary to the prescript of
these Canons is therefore reprobate, suppressed and not permitted to be revived.
Canon 3433
As Ecclesiastical Law ultimately refers to rules created by men and women, not natural or divine, all
valid Ecclesiastical Law may be said to be Positive Law and derived from Positive Law. Therefore, A
Positive Law cannot abrogate, suspend, nor change a Natural Law. Nor is it possible for a Positive
Law or Natural Law to abrogate, suspend or change a Divine Law.
Canon 3434
To the extent that valid Ecclesiastical Law is in accord with Natural Law and Divine Law, then such
agreement recognizes certain Divine Law and Natural Law to be in harmony with valid Ecclesiastical
Law. However, this is an alignment and not an abrogation, change or suspension of a Natural Law or
Divine Law by Positive Law.
Canon 3435
An Ecclesiastical Law is established and takes force when it is promulgated in accordance with these
Canons.
Canon 3436
All Ecclesiastical Law may be defined by six (6) Foundations including: Supernatural, Sacred, Faith,
Institution, Instruction and Rites & Procedures.
Canon 3437
When anyone references, writes or speaks of Ecclesiastical Law it shall mean these Canons and no
other.
1.2 Concepts
Canon 3438
Supernatural, or supranatural is a term describing any Event or Form believed or perceived by the
observer, to be above or beyond, what is understood to be natural or conforming to Natural Law of
the observable physical universe, perceived through Mind.
Canon 3439
Excluding the laws of Mind, also known as Cognitive Law, nothing that can be observed or measured
within the Universe is Supernatural. Excluding Cognitive Law, every Form and Event occurring within
the Universe is subject to Natural Law.
Canon 3440
Supernatural is equivalent to the concepts of paranormal and preternatural.
Canon 3441
While a Form of the Divine Creator also known as Unique Collective Awareness may not be
observable or measurable and without any object Form within the Universe, it remains subject to
Divine Law, which in turn defines Natural Law and Positive Law.
Canon 3442
By definition, only Mind through Cognitive Law may exhibit “supernatural” qualities as Cognitive Law is
derived from the simultaneous application of Divine Law and Natural Law.
Art icle 4 - Magic
Canon 3443
Magic is a term defining a wide variety of knowledge, rituals and practices whereby it is claimed a
competent practitioner may alter Form or Events by supernatural or occult means.
Canon 3444
The terms Sorcery, Occultism, Wicca, Wizardry, Witchcraft and Theurgy are equivalent to the term
Magic. However, the term Necromancy is a form of Magic literature, belief and ceremony and
therefore a sub-set of magic.
Canon 3445
Magic is of two (2) forms:
(1) Magic based on exploiting the ignorance of believers and followers; and
The most common Magic is that based in ignorance, trick or illusion (“Illusionary Magic”).
Canon 3446
Trick or Illusionary Magic is founded on manipulating the minds of the living or deceased involved in
the ceremony that some kind of supernatural powers are possessed by the practitioner(s) through
knowledge of ceremony, dress, procedure and the demonstration of tricks of misdirection and
sensory deprivation or distortion. Hence, apart from ignorance, the most important ingredient to
successful trick or Illusionary Magic is Belief.
Canon 3447
Deep Occult or Wisdom Magic is founded on the possession of superior knowledge, connected to
Natural Law and Divine Law and does not require tricks, misdirection and sensory deprivation or
distortion. Belief is not a key ingredient to Deep Occult or Wisdom Magic.
Canon 3448
Trick or Illusionary Magic uses a wide variety of manipulations and frauds to convince an audience of
its authenticity, from natural skills of hypnosis, alteration of mind state, auto-suggestion, implanted
memory work, sensory deprivation as well as time honored tricks such as smoke, fire, tricks of light,
drugs, chemical reactions and the use of tools and animals for Magic.
Canon 3449
Most Magic is based on trick or Illusionary Magic. All trick or Illusionary Magic is based on defrauding
and tricking the audience of living or deceased minds. Whilst it is less powerful than Deep Occult and
Wisdom Magic, the power of belief and consequential effects upon convinced minds is stronger.
Therefore, while trick and Illusionary Magic is without any valid spiritual basis, it is the stronger of the
two (2) forms of Magic because of the theatrical effect of a powerful Magic demonstration.
Canon 3450
All Magic known as Sorcery, Occultism, Wicca, Wizardry, Witchcraft, especially Black Magic,
Necromancy and ceremony derived from Grimoires is trick or Illusionary Magic, requiring a high level
of ignorance and belief.
Canon 3451
Knowledge and reason are the enemies of trick and Illusionary Magic. All Religions and Cults include
aspects of Magic within their rituals and beliefs.
Canon 3452
The origin of the term “Magic” is derived from the term “Magi” being the priests of Zoroastrianism of
Persia. However, the creation of the word “Magic” from Magi should not be assumed as attributing
the origin of Magic to Zoroastrianism, but a deliberate and misleading historical misdirection to
depreciate their knowledge and behaviour to mere “trick magic” rather than ancient Magic practices.
Canon 3453
The oldest practicioners of trick and Illusionary Magic are the priests of Ur, later the Amorties and
Akkadians, then the Ur-Ga-Rit and Tar-Sur (Tarsus) and then Ur-Sur-Lim (Jerusalem).
Canon 3454
The oldest practitioners and master of Deep Occult and Knowledge Magic are the Cuilliaéan, also
known as the Holly, also known as the Holy, also known as the Serpents, also known as the Hyksos
and the Davids, later corrupted to Druvid and Druids.
Canon 3455
By definition, the most powerful collection of occult and Magic wisdom in history is the laws,
covenants, charters and texts of Ucadia. No Magic is more powerful.
Canon 3456
When speaking of “Magic”, “Highest Magic” or “Real Magic” it shall mean the laws, covenants,
charters and texts of Ucadia and no other.
Canon 3457
Any curse, spell or invocation issued against these Canons, or any text of Ucadia is by definition
lesser Magic than Ucadia and so by definition has no effect, with the person or persons issuing such a
curse, spell of invocation immediately liable to receive the full force of such ill intent upon themselves
and their agents.
Art icle 5 - Occult
Canon 3458
Occult is a term defining a wide variety of knowledge of rituals and practices, usually associated with
magic and other forms of Power and Manipulation, normally kept hidden and secret from ordinary
followers. Hence, the Latin word occultus meaning literally clandestine, hidden and secret.
Canon 3459
All Religions and Cults include aspects of Occult knowledge within their rituals and beliefs. The most
common knowledge that is hidden as Occult is knowledge of magic.
Canon 3460
A major point of differentiation between a Religion and a Cult is the degree to which the core
knowledge of rituals and belief is Occult versus open to members. Even if knowledge is less
developed than older religions, a key sign of a Cult is a higher emphasis of Occult knowledge than
open knowledge, thus promoting high levels of cretinism within the ranks of its members.
Canon 3461
Knowledge hidden as Occult does not imply accuracy or validity. However, the practice of hiding
information as Occult knowledge implies a greater value that otherwise might be attributes if such
knowledge was freely available for critical analysis.
Canon 3462
Occult literature associated with Kabbalah, Sorcery, Wicca, Wizardry, Witchcraft, especially Black
Magic and Necromancy is based on trick and illusionary magic with no solid base of Occult wisdom
whatsoever. However, as minds are more prone to believe tricks and illusions through theatrical
display, such Occult literature is considered more powerful and credible to ignorant believers than
genuine wisdom.
Canon 3463
Once the ability to defraud and manipulate people through trick and illusionary magic is considered,
most Occult texts are self-serving and contain little or no true esoteric wisdom.
Art icle 6 - Dualit y
Canon 3464
Duality, also known as dichotomy is the fictional concept that a whole Form may also be classified
into two (2) subclasses or opposed parts. As Duality is such a fundamental fictional concept
underpinning many philosophical models, logic and sciences it is also defined as its own discipline
known as Dualism.
Canon 3465
Duality is a feature of natural reproduction and systems throughout Natural Law. It is also the
simplest example of specialty and co-dependence. However, not all systems resolve themselves
simply to a dichotomy.
Canon 3466
On a straight line of string, opposites can be plotted at maximum distances of separation. However,
on a circle created from the same line of string, extremes resolve themselves to the same point.
Furthermore, there are no straight lines in reality in the universe.
Canon 3467
Moral dualism is the belief that life, nature and the cosmos may be explained by the interaction
between benevolent and malevolent forces. In western religions, these forces are seen to be in
conflict, while in eastern religions, these forces are considered complimentary.
Canon 3468
In Philosophy, dualism defines the paradoxical relationship between mind and matter in which mental
phenomena, in contrast to cognitive processing, are recognized as non-locational, therefore non-real.
Canon 3469
In Occult knowledge, dualism is the hidden mirror aspect of a benevolent or malevolent spirit also
possessing an equally powerful opposite force. Thus demons are the negative personalities of a
supernatural being with their positive personalities hidden. Similarly, angels are the positive
personalities of supernatural beings with their negative personalities hidden.
Art icle 7 - Trinit y
Canon 3470
Trinity, also known as three, trio and triad is the fictional concept that a whole Form may also be
classified into three subclasses, or that three independent elements may combine to form a unified
Form. Similar to Duality, Trinity is a fundamental fictional concept underpinning religious and
philosophical models since the beginning of Civilization.
Canon 3471
Trinity as the number three is the first odd prime number, the first unique prime number and the only
prime triangular number. Therefore, Three and the concept of Trinity, similar to the number one has
been considered one of the fundamental numbers of magic since the beginning of time.
Canon 3472
Trinity is a feature of natural reproduction, relationships and systems throughout Natural Law. It is
also the simplest and most perfect example of system and the second most common grouping after
Duality. However, not all systems resolve themselves simply to a trinity.
Canon 3473
As Trinity is the simplest and most perfect example of system, it is also the simplest and most
perfect unit of family. Therefore the number three has always signified the most perfect family of
deity back to the earliest cultures of humanity, namely the father-god, mother-god and savior-god.
Canon 3474
The most recent use of Trinity to represent the “holy family” of gods for a religion is the Roman Cult
with the Father (Saturn/Satan), Son (Lucifer) and Holy Spirit (Cybele) representing the hidden Trinity
implanted into Christianity from the thirteenth Century and subsequently infected the other branches
of Christian faith.
Canon 3475
The use of a Trinity philosophy hidden behind allegory by the Roman Cult is not the first use of trinity
to define a “holy family” of gods of a pantheistic cult. However, it is the first cult in history to
deliberately hide the names of the deities from its followers, thus evoking an occult from the
acceptance of the trinity now by most Christians, without realizing exactly whom they worship.
Canon 3476
As the trinity formed by the Roman Cult being the Father (Saturn/Satan), Son (Lucifer) and Holy Spirit
(Cybele) was never a founding dogma of Imperial Christianity founded in 326 CE, nor Catholicism
founded in the 8th Century CE, the claim that it is a central dogma of Christianity is a deliberate and
obscene fraud with any such texts supporting these claims by definition forgeries and frauds of true
original texts.
Art icle 8 - Sacred
Canon 3477
Sacred is the fictional concept that a Form, either through solemn ritual or some previous attributes,
is worthy of recognition and devotion or reverence.
Canon 3478
The determination of whether a Form is Sacred or not may differ widely between various religions and
cults. In a number of cases, certain Forms are considered “universally sacred” particularly the
remains of famous prophets and saints as well as the original manuscripts of prophets as well as
places of extreme historical and religious significance.
Canon 3479
A Form may be created Sacred in accordance to the dogma of a particular Religion or Cult; or a Form
may already exist as Sacred in accordance to custom, time or significance.
Canon 3480
Contrary to deliberately misleading presumptions, the Sacredness of an object to a particular
Religion or Cult does not imply holiness. Instead, depending upon the Religion and its Occult
teachings, an Unholy Object might be considered Sacred as much as a Holy Object. Sacredness
therefore implies only reverence of a form to particular followers of a religion, not whether the form is
or is not holy.
Canon 3481
Sacred Form may be further defined into several subclasses including: Sacred Numeracy, Sacred
Geometry, Sacred Symbols, Sacred Places, Sacred Art, Sacred Texts, Sacred Rites, Sacred Office,
Sacred Mysteries, Sacred Architecture, Sacred Music, Sacred Language, Sacred Dance, Sacred
Plants, Sacred Food, Sacred Clothes and Sacred Tradition.
Canon 3482
When anyone references, writes or speaks of “Sacred” it shall mean these canons, UCADIA and
associated covenants and charters and no other.
Art icle 9 - Fait h
Canon 3483
Faith is a fictional term meaning loyalty to a Person based on promise or duty. Therefore, in its
earliest meaning Faith is “duty of fulfilling one’s trust in God”. Faith is a solemn obligation to a
promise, which is why the loss of faith is considered by many religions as a willful breach of trust and
contract.
Canon 3484
Faith is not the same meaning as belief. Belief is a fictional term originally equivalent in meaning
“Trust in God” whereas Faith in its original fictional sense means “duty of fulfilling one’s trust in God”.
Belief is therefore trust in the “Divine” that something is true, whereas Faith is an obligation to
believe something is true.
Canon 3485
Belief is not the same meaning as Knosis or “true knowledge”. Belief is based on trust of a higher
deity, while Knosis or true knowledge is based on trust borne from Proof, Reason or Logic. In order to
strengthen certain fictional models of Reality based on Faith, the definition of Knosis has been
abrograted and the definition of Belief deliberately misconstrued.
Canon 3486
As these canons of Divine Law, Natural Law and Positive Law incorporate the proof and existence of
the Divine Creator in All as well as perfect Knosis, it may be correctly concluded that these canons
represent “perfect belief”.
Canon 3487
In direct contrast to arguments based on Proof, as the rejection of an argument of Faith requires a
significant emotional acceptance of deception and error, incomplete and emotional attacks against a
particular argument of Faith may reinforce a belief, not weaken it.
Canon 3488
An Argument of Proof in Law is superior to an Argument of Faith in Law.
Canon 3489
All inferior Canon Law of the Roman Cult, also known as the Vatican, also falsely known as the Holy
See is based on arguments of Faith, not arguments of Proof. Therefore, all claimed laws of the Roman
Cult are inferior to these canons.
Art icle 10 - Religion
Canon 3490
Religion is a particular administered system of beliefs, faith or worship of one or more gods defined
by one or more sacred objects, stories, scriptures, rituals or observances.
Canon 3491
A Religion is distinguished from a Cult by three primary tests of fact: Prevalence of Occult within its
Dogma, Prevalence of Anti-Social and Extremist Dogma and Prevalence of Cretinism amongst
followers, as opposed to Initiates.
Canon 3492
Any Religion, no matter what age, that demonstrates a high prevalence of occult, anti-social and
extremist dogma as well as a high level of cretinism through deliberate exploitation, concealment and
exclusion of followers by religious leaders may be properly called a Cult.
Canon 3493
By definition, for a belief system to be considered a Religion, it must assert six (6) fundamental
presumptions:
(2) That followers are less than these supernatural beings; and
(3) Contact has been made between the supernatural beings and one or more men or women
considered unique from all other men and women; and
(4) This contact is “proven” by the existence of one or more sacred objects; and
(5) The administration and officials of the religion represent the one, true and only successors to
those who first received divine instruction and founded the religion; and
(6) The administrators and officials of the religion have the right to decide what is pleasing, what is
not and if anyone should be excluded or punished for failing certain rules.
Canon 3494
If a particular belief system does not presume all of the six (6) fundamental presumptions then such a
belief system cannot properly be called a Religion.
Canon 3495
By definition of the meaning of Religion, UCADIA cannot be properly considered a Religion, but above
all Religions.
Canon 3496
Any claim by any person, aggregate or entity that UCADIA itself is a Religion is automatically a false
and deliberately fraudulent claim by definition of the meaning of Religion.
Art icle 11 - Cult
Canon 3497
A Cult is a particular administered system of beliefs, faith or worship of one or more gods defined by
one or more sacred objects, stories, scriptures, rituals or observances, distinct from a Religion by
certain behaviors primarily determined by the treatment of its members versus leadership.
Canon 3498
A Cult is distinguished from a Religion by three primary tests of fact:
Canon 3499
As a primary test of fact of a Cult versus a Religion is the extremely high number of Cretins and
Fanatics amongst its followers, the followers of a Cult are by definition called Cretins, while the
leaders of a Cult are called Cultors.
Canon 3500
The age of a particular cult, nor its size is any indication that such a Cult should be regarded as a
Religion.
Canon 3501
Cults are neither positive for a Society, nor members of a wider Society. As Cults deliberately use
fraud, manipulation and distortions to recruit members and keep members, all Cults must be
regarded properly as organized criminal syndicates before the Rule of Law.
Canon 3502
As all Cults must rightly be regarded as enemies of civilized Society and nothing more than organized
criminal enterprises, claims of religious persecution, right for freedom of expression do not apply as
defense when regarding Cults.
Canon 3503
A Cult can never lawfully sue for defamation. Any action brought by a Cult against Ucadia or a
Member in order to injure these canons is itself an injury to the law, fraudulent and without force of
law. Any court or judge that does not dismiss such an action enjoins themselves to the injury against
the Rule of Law and is unfit to be a judge.
Canon 3504
By definition of the meaning of Cult, UCADIA cannot be properly considered a Cult. Any claim by any
person, aggregate or entity that UCADIA or any aspect of UCADIA is itself is a Cult is automatically a
false and deliberately fraudulent claim against the very definition of the meaning of Cult.
Art icle 12 - Minist er
Canon 3505
A Minister is a Person authorized by a Religion or Cult to represent the particular faith; to perform
instruction, guidance and tuition; and perform certain rites and procedures. Hence, in Latin a minister
is a helper, an attendant and representative agent.
Canon 3506
In accordance with these canons and the Sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, the Society
of One Heaven and valid Ucadian Societies have the duty and the proper and exclusive right to form
those who are designated for sacred ministries.
Canon 3507
The terms Cleric, Priest, Rabbi, Imam, Sheik, Monk are equivalent to the term Minister when a person
is properly formed in accordance to these Canons and the rules and by-laws of their particular
Religion or Cult.
Canon 3508
While it remains an absolute right for any Religion or Cult to determine suitable qualification for
different sacred ministries within their hierarchy defined by their by-laws, no Religion or Cult may deny
women or men the right to apply, train and be ordained for a pastoral sacred ministry within their
local community.
Canon 3509
Ministers are bound by a special obligation to show reverence and obedience firstly to these canons
and the sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum and secondly to the competent authority of
their own Religion and Cult and superiors.
Canon 3510
Only Ministers can obtain offices of a Religion or Cult for whose exercise the power of orders or the
power of ecclesiastical governance is required.
Canon 3511
By consent, vow and ordination, Ministers of a particular Religion or Cult are bound to pursue
exemplary and virtuous lives, and to demonstrate moral leadership for their community:
(i) Fulfilling faithfully and tirelessly the duties bestowed upon them, especially when concerning
pastoral care; and
(ii) Honoring the sacred ceremonies of their faith and adherence to such ritual as regular as is
considered proper as devotion; and
(iii) Meditating, Praying and Invoking guidance and assistance for the sick, the weak, the dying and
those in need of care and assistance.
(iv) Respect and wear suitable ecclesiastical garb according to the norms issued by competent
authority of the faith; and
(v) foster simplicity of life and are to refrain from all things that have a semblance of vanity; and
(vi) Refrain completely from all those things which are unbecoming to their state, according to the
prescripts of particular law.
Canon 3512
Notwithstanding a pledge to a simple refrain from an abundance of possessions and wealth, Ministers
are entitled to remuneration which is consistent with their service and specific nature of their
functions, especially places and times, and by which they can provide for the necessities of their life
as well as for the equitable payment of those whose services they need.
Canon 3513
Throughout their service, Ministers are expected to continue to acquire knowledge of other sciences,
especially of those which are connected with the sacred sciences, particularly insofar as such
knowledge contributes to the exercise of pastoral ministry.
Canon 3514
Clerics are forbidden to assume public offices which entail a participation in the exercise of civil
power.
Canon 3515
Without the permission of their superiors, Ministers are not to take on the management of goods
belonging to lay persons or secular offices which entail an obligation of rendering accounts. They are
prohibited from giving surety even with their own goods without consultation with their proper
ordinary. They also are to refrain from signing promissory notes, namely, those through which they
assume an obligation to make payment on demand.
Canon 3516
Clerics are prohibited from conducting business or trade personally or through others, for their own
advantage or that of others, except with the permission of legitimate ecclesiastical authority.
Canon 3517
Since military service is not in keeping with the clerical state, clerics and candidates for sacred
orders are not to volunteer for military service except with the permission of their ordinary.
Canon 3518
The demand for permanent celibacy amongst the clergy of a particular Religion or Cult is against all
forms of Divine Law, Natural Law and Positive Law, instead opening up the opportunity for deviant,
abhorant and secretive sexual behaviour. Therefore, any by-law by any Religion or Cult that demands
permanent Celibacy is unlawful, null and void, having no temporal, nor ecclesiastical effect.
Canon 3519
Any leader of any Religion or Cult that demands the enforcement of permanent celibacy upon other
members of the congregation or clergy is guilty of a grave offence against all Divine Law, Natural Law
and Positive Law and therefore is automatically stripped of any claimed apostolic, ecclesiastical
ministerial, judicial or other authority.
Art icle 13 - Clergy
Canon 3520
Clergy is a term used to describe a body of Ministers, who are trained and ordained for religious
service within a particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 3521
Just as all spiritual dimensions including Heaven, Purgatory and Hell constitute one college as the
Society of One Heaven, so in a like manner all Clergy of all valid Religions and Cults are united
amongst themselves in accordance with these canons.
Canon 3522
The Apostolic Prothonotaries of the Sacred Rota and Supreme Court of One Heaven and Apostolic
Prothorabban of the Divine Sunedrion, in whom continues the offices and powers given by Divine
Decree and most Sacred of all ancient Covenants, are the highest and most senior Clergy of all and
the pastors of all Religions and Cults upon the Earth and Solar System. By virtue of their office, they
possess supreme, full, immediate and universal power over all Religions and Cults, which they are
able to exercise freely.
Canon 3523
No appeal or recourse is permitted against a sentence or decree of the Apostolic Prothonotaries of
the Sacred Rota and Supreme Court of One Heaven.
Canon 3524
No office of any Religion or Cult may claim higher authority than the Supreme Court of One Heaven
and the Apostolic Prothorabban. Any document which contradicts this canon is null and void having no
legal effect to the extent of such errors having no force or law.
Art icle 14 - Init iat e
Canon 3525
An Initiate is any person who has been thoroughly educated and accepted into a particular religion in
accordance with its beliefs while still retaining their faculties of reason, logic and competence. Hence,
an Initiate is a knowledgeable member of a religion in contrast to a Cretin.
Canon 3526
A Cult does not have Initiates as a Cult by definition seeks to manipulate the mind of members and
obscure the faculties of reason, logic and competence.
Canon 3527
An Initiate is duty bound to obey, honor and protect these canons first and the by-laws and rituals of
their Religion second.
Canon 3528
An Initiate is free to worship, express, promote and defend their Religion without harming others in
accordance with these canons and the by-laws of their Religion.
Canon 3529
No person is permitted to intimidate, ridicule, abuse or assault another on the basis of their Religious
faith.
Canon 3530
Excluding agreements freely consented, entered and executed, an Initiate has the right to evoke one
or more beliefs of their Religion as a conscientious objection to the compelled performance of an act
or duty considered abhorrent or unlawful by their Religion.
Canon 3531
An Initiate may not claim conscientious objection by Religion to the performance of an agreement into
which they freely, willingly and knowingly consented to enter.
Art icle 15 - Cult or
Canon 3532
A Cultor is any person who has been thoroughly educated and accepted into a particular Cult in
accordance with its beliefs while still retaining their faculties of reason, logic and competence. Hence,
a Cultor is a knowledgeable member of a Cult in contrast to a Cretin.
Canon 3533
As a Cultor is a knowledgeable member of a Cult in contrast to a Cretin, a Cultor is most often a
leader or leadership position, therefore holding primary responsibility for the deliberate manipulation,
corruption and trickery of members of the Cult to inhibit their faculties of reason, logic and
competence in order to create Cretins or Fanatics.
Canon 3534
As a Cultor is primarily responsible for the mental, emotional and spiritual injury of others who join the
Cult and are converted into Cretins or Fanatics, a Cultor is therefore personally and fully financially,
morally and spiritually liable for any injury done by one or more of their followers.
Canon 3535
As a Cultor seeks to manipulate and distort the minds of others, a Cultor is never free to worship,
express, promote and defend their Cult.
Canon 3536
As a Cult seeks to mentally, emotionally and spiritually injure others, all men and women have a moral
obligation to expose, impede, arrest and close down Cults and ensure no men, women or children are
injured.
Canon 3537
No Cultor has the right to claim any religious or faith based reason for non-performance or immunity.
Art icle 16 - Cret in
Canon 3538
A Cretin is any person who has been poorly educated and accepted into a particular Religion or Cult
in accordance with its beliefs while temporarily losing their faculties of reason, logic and competence.
Hence, a Cretin is an idiot member of a Religion or Cult in contrast to an Initiate or Cultor.
Canon 3539
By definition, the majority of members of a Cult are Cretins, with few Cultors.
Canon 3540
While the terms "cretin" and "cretinism" are used in medical science to define certain permanent
mental and physical deformaties, the severe mental impairment known as "Cretin" deliberately
brought about by membership to a Cult or a Religion is temporary and may be reversed through
therapy and knowledge.
Canon 3541
A Cretin does not imply a person unable to reverse the effects of membership to a Cult, nor may the
use of the term be considered a term of derision but a statement of fact that a person has
temporarily lost their faculties of reason, logic and competence in being part of a Cult.
Canon 3542
The Cultors of a Cult are personally liable for any punitive damage resulting from any actions or
attacks by Cretins of their Cult against these canons and UCADIA.
Canon 3543
Through the deliberately manipulative training of Cultors, a Cretin is taught to be suspicious of
knowledge, especially Gnosis. Therefore, a person proven to be a Cretin cannot be permitted to hold
any official position in which they are responsible for the teaching of children, the research or writing
of knowledge or communication, media or commentary concerning knowledge.
Art icle 17 - Fanat ic
Canon 3544
A Fanatic is any person in a mental state of obsessive uncritical zeal or romantic delusion who has
been poorly educated and accepted into a particular Religion or Cult in accordance with its beliefs
while temporarily losing their faculties of reason, logic and competence. Hence, a Fanatic is by
definition a zealous or obsessive Cretin.
Canon 3545
By deliberate planning, Cults develop amongst its general followers, who are by definition called
Cretins, at least some Cretins who are Fanatics.
Canon 3546
Not all Cretins who fall further into the control of a Cult to become Fanatics are prone to Violence.
However, almost all extreme religious violence requires the careful manipulation of people to become
Cretins and then Fanatics.
Canon 3547
The strength of Fanatics to a Cult is that no amount of knowledge, or reasoning can return the mind of
a Fanatic to the use of logic and common sense in the short term. Thus, once a Cult has installed a
Fanatical mind in a person, it is the ultimate mind control.
Canon 3548
Religious extremism promoted by Cults such as suicide or murder almost inevitably requires the
deliberate cultivation of Cretins, with enough suitably prone to extremist delusion to become
Fanatics.
Canon 3549
Any Cult that promotes wholesale Cretinism and therefore a number of Fanatics is nothing more than
a criminal organization and an enemy to all civilizations and other religions.
Art icle 18 - Bigot
Canon 3550
A Bigot is any person intolerantly devoted to their own religious beliefs who exhibits irrational
animosity and illogical hostility to other religions. Hence, a bigot is considered a “religious
hyprocrite”.
Canon 3551
Given the goal of a Cult is by definition to conceal knowledge, to manipulate its followers and
promote ignorance, no Person who forms a rational and reasoned opinion concerning the dangers of
a Cult may reasonably be called a Bigot.
Canon 3552
The modification of the meaning of Bigot to define any person who is hostile to others of difference
race, ethnicity, nationality or sexual orientation is deliberately confusing and misleading. The primary
and only determination of a Bigot is a person who has an irrational and illogically founded animosity
and hatred towards another religion.
Canon 3553
As the proper definition of Bigotry requires a person to exclude rationality, reason and logic from
their conclusions against a belief system, it is an absurdity and deliberate deception to call a person
a Bigot who has formed a rational and reasoned opinion of a Cult.
Canon 3554
The most vocal and deceptive of Bigots in the world are organs of the elite anti-semitic parasites
formed in 1913 by the ultra secretive Khazarian Cult known as Independent Order of B’nai B’rith to
promote religious hatred and hatred between Abrahamic religions.
Canon 3555
The most common form of Bigots are members of Cults otherwise called Cretins.
Canon 3556
Any claim of Bigotry by a Cult to attack any reasonable and factual summary of its behaviour is by
definition an unlawful act and itself a defamation of character.
Art icle 19 - Racist
Canon 3557
A Racist is any person who believes that certain genetic factors are the primary determinant of
human traits and capacities and that such racial differences produce an inherent religious and social
superiority of one particular race over others. Hence, racism is the belief in the existence of a
“superior” race of Homo Sapiens above all others.
Canon 3558
One of the oldest and most persistent stories of Racism owes its origins to the CCR5 genetic defect
acquired by the earliest survivors of the Bubonic plagues in Egypt during the 14th Century BCE, who
through close family breeding maintained the defect within both parent lines and subsequently
appeared immune to many of the great pandemics that swept Europe over the past three thousand
years. The most numerous possessing this defect providing certain levels of immunity by far being in
Ireland, then Britain, then parts of Western Europe and to a lesser extent parts of North Africa and
Palestine.
Canon 3559
The most racist text in history of civilization is the sacred text and demonic covenant of the twelve
tribes of the Menesheh known as the Talmud, written in the 4th Century in direct opposition to
Christian scripture promulgated by Emperor Constantine in the formation of the new empire
ILEX•NOVUM•ROMANUM•IMPERIUM or I.N.R.I--literally "One Law (is) New Name (for) Roman Empire" --
simply Holly (Holy) New Roman Empire.
Canon 3560
While the Menesheh were never considered true members of the Yahudi and descendents possessing
the CCR5 defect, through interbreeding they also possessed this trait. However, in direct
contradiction to knowledge at the time, they falsely claimed genetic and therefore racial superiority
over all others as the Aryan and “pure master race”.
Canon 3561
The most racist Cult over the past eight hundred years is the elite anti-semitic parasites also known
as the Black Khazars, also known as the Venetians and the Scythians from Asia who usurped the
descendents of the twelve tribes of Menesheh through identity theft to falsely claim to be the heirs to
the Covenant.
Canon 3562
In accordance with these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum no
man, woman nor group may claim superior genetic position over another as a "superior race" of other
members of the Homo Sapien species.
Canon 3563
In accordance with these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum, the
racist and hateful doctrines of the elite anti-semitic parasites are repudiated as false, including the
claims of the Venetian and Black Khazar/Scythian elite families of superior status, despite the well
known historical recording of their identity theft and imposter standing.
Art icle 20 - Ant iSemit e
Canon 3564
An Anti-Semite is any person who has a prejudice against or hostility towards Semitic peoples of the
Levant Gulf of the Mediterranean, specifically Akkadian, Phoenician, Syrian, Yahudi, Palestinian and
Israelite civilizations.
Canon 3565
As the word “Jew” is a fictitious word created in the 16th Century in an attempt to merge Semitic
people with people originally from southern Mongolia and Kazakhstan, it is absurd to conclude the
term Anti-Semitic implies anti-Jewish as there was never a Semitic civilization in history called the
“Jews”.
Canon 3566
The extreme minority of people who owe their heritage from elite families of Venice and the Black
Khazarian tribes of Magyar, are connected to the elite anti-semitic parasites and have never been
Semitic, nor share any of the history of the original cultures that created the Talmud, nor Torá(h), nor
ruled the Yahudi or Israelites. Instead, they are a small band of imposter families that assumed power
in the 16th Century.
Canon 3567
As the secretive Khazarian/Scythian elite anti-semitic parasite families are neither Semitic, nor Jewish,
no exposure of their treacherous behaviour, including their identity theft of much older Menes-heh
families and Rabbi names during World War II and deliberate and constant war against the Jewish
people from within can be construed as anti-Semitic or anti-Jewish.
Canon 3568
If the meaning Anti-Semite were taken to believe any group of people who have been prejudiced
against or hostile towards the “Jews” rooted in hatred ethnic background or culture then the single
worst group in history against the "Jews" are without question the elite anti-semitic parasite families
of the Black Khazars, also known as the Venetians and the Scythian families of Asia who hijacked all
other sub branches and have caused more death, mass murderand suffering of “Jews” than another
group.
Art icle 21 - See
Canon 3569
A See (also known as sedes and sea) is a term used to describe literally a “seat of power” and
claimed customary, legal and spiritual authority of a particular Religion or Cult to impose its law and
will over a particular geographic location. Hence, see as “sedes” in Latin means “throne” while see
as “sea” also means a physical as well as temporal firmament.
Canon 3570
A See as a source and “seat of power” may be defined by three interconnected elements of power:
firstly, the customary temporal claim, secondly, the legal claim and thirdly the spiritual claim.
Canon 3571
The first element of a See is the customary and temporal claim that a particular Religion or Cult
claims a physical and historic presence at a certain location for an unbroken period of time.The most
significant of these claims is what is known as an “Apostolic See” where a particular Religion or Cult
claims that an Apostle of Jesus Christ first formed a church.
Canon 3572
The second element of a See is the temporal legal claim through the law of the Religion or Cult to the
See representing the highest temporal court and jurisdiction of the region, often known as the
“Episcopal See” or the See of a Bishop. Several Religions and Cults believe this authority is
independent of the actual Bishop, so that when a Bishop dies, the continuing See is called a “Sede
vacante” or “vacant see”.
Canon 3573
The third element of a See and most controversial, is the claim by some Religions and Cults that the
See also represents a spiritual dimension simultaneously to the temporal realm, and comparable to
the physical seas of the planet, so that a Bishop or leader also had influence over this spiritual realm
as well as temporal realm.
Canon 3574
In accordance with these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum, the
One See, the true See and the only Holy See is the Society of One Heaven and no other.
Canon 3575
When anyone references, writes or speaks of the “See”, “Holy See”, or “First See” it shall mean the
Society of One Heaven and no other.
Art icle 22 - Alt ar
Canon 3576
An Altar is a sacred structure upon which offerings to one or more deities are made through some
religious ceremony according to the laws of a particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 3577
An Altar may be a temporary or dedicated structure for the purpose of making offerings, including a
variety of shapes. However, the most common dedicated structure as an Altar is a flat table-like form
upon which votive offerings and sacrifices are made.
Canon 3578
The region immediately around an Altar is known as the Sanctuary. By definition a structure is not a
Temple nor a Basilica, nor an Oratory, unless it possesses one or more Altars.
Canon 3579
The historic purpose of an Altar throughout the history of Religions and Cults is the use of a sacred
structure, usually located at a place of special significance, at which to make some offering which is
considered pleasing to the particular deities of the Religion or Cult in exchange for favor, divine
grace, divine inspiration or some other sign.
Canon 3580
By its historical use and significance, an Altar is equivalent to believing a particular structure and
location may act as a portal of communication between the temporal world and the spiritual world.
Hence, ancient sites of temples and altars have remained significant sites of churches, synagogues
and mosques to the present day.
Canon 3581
As the primary purpose of a significant Altar is to offer up some kind of sacrifice or offering to one or
more deities, the direction and location of initiates is usually to a wall of a temple and obscuring
direct view from any onlookers. Hence in churches of certain Christian Cults, the main Altar is to the
side or behind the main public altar. The main public altar in public view is always by definition the
minor Altar.
Canon 3582
In significant churches of Cults where worship to certain demonic deities hidden as positive deities at
certain times is considered a central occult obligation, there may be more than one main Altar behind
the elaborate minor public altar.
Canon 3583
The most important form of sacrifice performed on main altars by ministers of Cults that secretly or
openly worship death and demons is the blood sacrifice of murdering babies and children at
significant events and anniversaries.
Canon 3584
The most significant form of sacrifice performed on minor public altars by ministers of Cults that
secretly or openly worship death and demons is the simulation of blood sacrifice, cannibalism and
murder performed through the Eucharist ceremony of Osiris and ancient Egyptian Black Magic, in open
defiance and curse of supreme deities and aligned spiritual knowledge.
Canon 3585
The murder of any living animal or Homo Sapien upon any kind of Altar is an abomination and a
deliberate insult against the divine creator, all spirits, all angels, demons and souls living and
deceased. Any person who performs such a ceremony immediately evokes and consents to the
sacred act of Binding upon their self in accordance with Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Canon 3586
The presence of human or animal bones, or dried flesh or blood within or upon an altar is an
abomination and a deliberate insult against the divine creator, all spirits, all angels, demons and souls
living and deceased. Any person who performs such a ceremony immediately evokes and consents to
the sacred act of Binding upon their self in accordance with Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Canon 3587
The simulation of blood sacrifice, cannibalism and the ancient Egyptian black magic rituals of the
Eucharist upon an altar is an abomination and a deliberate insult against the divine creator, all spirits,
all angels, demons and souls living and deceased.
Art icle 23 - Sanct uary
Canon 3588
A Sanctuary is the consecrated or sacred area of a temple around its altar or tabernacle.
Canon 3589
The deliberate burial of human remains, crypt or relics are never permitted to be incorporated into a
valid Sanctuary.
Canon 3590
Where a historic sanctuary is constructed upon the burial ground of human remains, or their
deliberate inclusion in a temple, then such a sanctuary shall be considered a lesser sanctuary on
account of the influence of the remains.
Art icle 24 - Orat ory
Canon 3591
An Oratory is a place of instruction, administration and sacred ceremony designated by competent
authority for the benefit of some community or group of members of a particular Religion or Cult into
which other non-members of the Religion or Cult may also come with the consent of some competent
superior.
Canon 3592
An Oratory is equivalent to a Court granted certain ecclesiastical powers by a competent authority of
a particular Religion or Cult in accordance with its own laws. Hence, the Latin word orator being “one
who speaks”.
Canon 3593
No temporary or permanent Oratory may be formed, without the express written permission of a
competent authority of a particular Religion or Cult in accordance with its own laws. Once validly
established, an oratory cannot be converted to profane use without the authority of the same
competent authority that granted it.
Canon 3594
In the context of an Oratory, a private Chapel is a place for administration and sacred ceremony
designated by competent authority for the benefit of one or more physical persons. The Chambers of
a judge is equivalent to a private chapel.
Canon 3595
It is fitting for oratories and private chapels to be blessed according to the rite prescribed in the
liturgical books of a particular Religion or Cult. They must, however, be reserved for divine worship
alone and free from all domestic uses.
Canon 3596
The most sacred and senior of any kind of Oratory, possessing the greatest ecclesiastical powers is
a Court of a Ucadian society. The highest court of all courts and therefore Oratory is the Supreme
Court of One Heaven, or a Court bestowed with such temporary or permanent powers.
Canon 3597
As the Society of One Heaven is the one See, the true See and the only Holy See, all ecclesiastical
powers of Courts and Oratories granted under the power of the See are vested in Ucadian Courts
only, particularly the powers of the Sacred Rota and twelve Apostolic Prothonotaries.
Canon 3598
Any Court, claiming itself to be an Oratory that does not recognize the superior standing of these
Canons is by definition a false court and an outlawed venue, possessing neither any ecclesiastical
power, nor judicial or lawful power whatsoever.
Canon 3599
Any judgment from a false court that denies the validity of these canons and rule of law is
automatically null and void having no weight in law, nor ecclesiastical power of enforcement.
Art icle 25 - Temple
Canon 3600
A Temple is a sacred structure reserved for ceremonies and rites to one or more deities of a
particular Religion or Cult. A Temple is also believed to be literally the permanent or temporary
dwelling place or residence of these same deities.
Canon 3601
The word “Temple” is equivalent to the word Church as well as the word Synagogue and the word
Mosque.
Canon 3602
No Temple may be built without the express written consent of the competent authority of a
particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 3603
It is considered an essential right of membership that a valid member of a particular Religion or Cult
has the right of entry or leave any Temple of their faith, especially in the public exercise of divine
worship.
Canon 3604
It is considered a general courtesy and openness that the officials of a particular Religion or Cult
permit non-Members of their faith to enter or leave any Temple on the provision that respect and
positive custom as demanded is adhered.
Canon 3605
Entry to a Temple is to be free and gratuitous during the time of sacred celebrations.
Canon 3606
No person may be denied the right to leave a Temple, nor to be obstructed from doing so if this be
their free will, even if such a demand be made during the process of a particular religious ceremony.
Canon 3607
In the building and repair of Temples, the principles and norms of the liturgy and of sacred art are to
be observed, after the advice of experts has been taken into account.
Canon 3608
The ruins of Temples, otherwise damaged or destroyed from past acts, are to be honored and
respected as if the Temple remained operational and functional.
Canon 3609
The deliberate damage or destruction of a Temple of a Religion or Cult is expressly forbidden, unless
a proscribed Cult in accordance with these Canons.
Canon 3610
The deliberate removal of artifacts and elements from the ruins of a Temple is expressly forbidden
and any such artifacts must be returned to the competent custodians of such a Temple. However, if
no competent custodian exists and such artifacts are unlikely to be properly preserved, then the
temporary custody of such artifacts are permitted only until competent custodianship is restored.
Canon 3611
The restoration and rebuilding of ancient Temples of special significance is to be encouraged and
permitted on the condition that such restoration and rebuilding honor the previous form of the Temple
prior to its destruction.
Canon 3612
After construction has been completed properly, a new Temple is to be dedicated or at least blessed
as soon as possible; the laws of the sacred liturgy are to be observed.
Canon 3613
Each Temple is to have its own title which cannot be changed after the church has been dedicated.
Canon 3614
In a Temple that has legitimately been dedicated or blessed, all acts of divine worship can be
performed, without prejudice to parochial rights.
Canon 3615
All those responsible are to take care that in Temples such cleanliness and beauty are preserved as
befit and that whatever is inappropriate to the holiness of the place is excluded.
Canon 3616
If a Temple cannot be used in any way for divine worship and there is no possibility of repairing it, a
competent authority can relegate it to profane but not sordid use.
Art icle 26 - Basilica
Canon 3617
A Basilica is a large Temple representing the highest court and sanctuary of a whole region for
instruction, administration and sacred ceremony by competent authority of a particular Religion or
Cult. Hence, a Basilica is also usually the site of a See.
Canon 3618
The term Basilica is equivalent to the term Cathedral.
Canon 3619
As the Society of One Heaven is the First See, the one See and only true Holy See, all lesser See and
Basilica are by default the property of One Heaven and subject to the authority of One Heaven.
II. Supernatural
Canon 3620
Unique Collective Awareness (UCA) is an idea that the base of all things, all dimension, all existence
and all form is awareness and that this awareness may be described by the existence of the
universe of all things (collection of unique objects). In other words, everything has awareness and
everything is made of awareness in motion being Unique Collective Awareness.
Canon 3621
All dimensions including any believed or claimed spiritual dimension such as divine, heaven, hell,
purgatory supernatural, or paranormal must by definition be part of Unique Collective Awareness and
therefore cannot be greater than Unique Collective Awareness.
Canon 3622
Unique Collective Awareness, also known as UCA is equivalent to the Absolute, the ALL, the IS, the
one, the Divine Creator. Therefore, there is no higher god, nor deity nor spiritual form of any kind than
Unique Collective Awareness.
Canon 3623
By definition, no dimension or place may exist separate from or outside the dimension of Unique
Collective Awareness. Therefore, any claim of a unique dimension in the control or influence of a
Religion or Cult that is not authorized by One Heaven is a deliberate fraud and absurdity.
Canon 3624
In accordance with these canons and the sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, all power,
rights and authority of Unique Collective Awareness is vested in Trust to the Society of One Heaven
and valid Ucadian Societies. Therefore, any claim of equal or higher authority by any person,
aggregate, religion or cult that does not have the authority of One Heaven is null and void from the
beginning.
Art icle 28 - Aft erlife
Canon 3625
Afterlife, also known as the hereafter, is a term defining the belief and existence of life after death. It
is equivalent to the term Heaven.
Canon 3626
In accordance with these canons, the Universe and therefore Life is a Dream in Motion according to
defined rules known as Natural Law. As Life is a Dream being Unique Collective Awareness in motion,
no thought, nor experience, nor mind can ever die.
Art icle 29 - Heaven
Canon 3627
Heaven is a term that defines three key concepts in one: firstly, the existence of a supernatural
dimension beyond the physical world, secondly, a specific sub-segment of this supernatural dimension
in which beings exist in a state of harmony and paradise and thirdly a state of being of physical
existence in harmony with others and nature equivalent to paradise.
Canon 3628
In the first instance of meaning, the term Heaven is equivalent to ancient terms such as Aaru, Ades,
Elysium, Sheol and Mag Mell defining a unified universal plain in which the spirits of deceased men and
women co-exist in with other supernatural beings such as deities.
Canon 3629
In the second instance of meaning, the term Heaven is equivalent to ancient terms such as Paradise
and Valhalla defining a unified universal plain in which the spirits of deceased men and women co-
exist in peace with other supernatural beings in a state of harmony and paradise.
Canon 3630
In the third instance of meaning, the term Heaven is applied to the Earth, or “heaven on earth”, it
implying a place where men and women co-exist in peace with other life and nature in a state of
harmony and paradise.
Canon 3631
Where a religion defines Heaven in terms of a specific sub-segment of supernatural dimension, the
remaining segments of supernatural dimension imply a less than perfect state of existence, such as
purgatory and hell. Therefore, any religious dogma that defines heaven in such a manner infers that at
some point some split or division occurred to cause heaven to become separated into different sub-
segments.
Canon 3632
The belief in Hell as defined by the Abrahamic roots of Ur is to believe that war still exists in heaven.
Canon 3633
One Heaven is formed by a formal treaty between all major and minor heavens and all the major
deities and spirits. Every man, woman and higher order spirit that has ever existed has an absolute
right to enter Heaven.
Canon 3634
Any Religion or Cult that places conditions upon the entry into Heaven, including judging who may or
may not enter is in direct violation of Divine Law, Natural Law and Positive Law. Therefore, such claims
or doctrines are immediately null and void from the beginning, having no effect nor force.
Art icle 30 - Hell
Canon 3635
Hell is a term that defines two key concepts in one: firstly, a specific sub-segment of supernatural
dimension in which beings exist in a state of harmony and paradise known as heaven, while others
exist in a state of torture and misery known as hell; and secondly a state of being of physical
existence in representing torture, misery, disharmony with nature.
Canon 3636
Hell cannot exist without firstly the simultaneous belief in the existence of Heaven and secondly in the
existence of an underlying supernatural plain of existence for all versions of afterlife.
Canon 3637
In the first instance of meaning, the term Hell defines a unified universal plain in which the spirits of
deceased men and women exist under torture, misery and disharmony with other supernatural
beings.
Canon 3638
In the second instance of meaning, the term Hell is applied to the Earth, or “hell on earth”, implying a
place where men and women exist under torture, misery and disharmony.
Canon 3639
As the planet Earth is a natural paradise, therefore natural heaven, it requires extraordinary and
deliberately constant effort by one or more religions to create and sustain “hell on earth”.
Canon 3640
In accordance with these canons and the sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, no
supernatural dimension known as Hell exists anymore, now or in the future.
Canon 3641
Any religion that is predicated on the unending existence of hell in heaven and upon the earth is a cult
of the highest insanity against all Divine Law, Natural Law and Positive Law. Therefore, such a religion
being so thoroughly incompetent is without any authority, not to be practiced and to be removed
from history.
Art icle 31 - Purgat ory
Canon 3642
Purgatory is the belief of a supernatural dimension existing between two other dimensions being
Heaven and Hell in which souls must undertake a period of suffering for their “sins” before they can
enter Heaven.
Canon 3643
Purgatory not only implies a belief that war still exists in Heaven, by the continued existence of Hell,
but that there is no such thing as “Divine Justice” as good and moral people are required to suffer
before being permitted into Heaven.
Canon 3644
By wicked and deliberate design by certain religious cults, Purgatory removes any possible salvation
by creating a “hell for the good”, whilst maintaining Hell as well as promoting “Hell on Earth”.
Canon 3645
In accordance with Divine Law, Natural Law and all valid Positive Law there is no such place or thing
as Purgatory, nor has there ever been such a place and any claims to the contrary are deliberately
false and misleading.
Canon 3646
Any Religion or Cult that promotes a claim doctrine or dogma concerning the existence of Purgatory
is in direct violation of all Divine Law, Natural Law and valid Positive Law. Therefore any such claim is
null and void from the beginning with no force of law.
2.2 Supernatural Entity
Canon 3647
A Deity is a supernatural being believed to possess miraculous or magical powers that is regarded
by certain followers to be a god as distinct from a lesser spiritual force. Hence, a god is always a
form of deity.
Canon 3648
As valid Divine Law recognizes that life and existence is a dream in motion in accordance with the
Canons of valid Natural Law, so long as a Deity is believed to exist and worshipped as existing, it has
valid existence.
Canon 3649
Belief, worship and subsequent existence of a Deity is separate to any claimed power or influence as
attributes of a particular Deity. All spiritual forces remain subject to Divine Law and the limits of
Natural Law.
Canon 3650
As existence depends upon the immutability of valid Natural Law, no spiritual force, including the
Absolute, the one, the ALL can abrogate, suspend or change a single Natural Law without causing the
collective dream of existence to collapse. Therefore, no Deity possesses the power to abrogate,
suspend nor change any valid Natural Law.
Canon 3651
In accordance with a particular faith, a deity may represent a spiritual force of supreme goodness,
sanctity and holiness, a spiritual force of great destruction, negativity and ill intent, or possessing a
duality personality of both good and evil.
Canon 3652
Any religion that recognizes multiple personalities of a singular supreme deity recognizes a
pantheistic or multiple deity perspective of the universe and heaven, even if such a conclusion is
repudiated and denied by the religion itself.
Canon 3653
When a particular religion recognizes the existence of a unique spiritual force greater than a form of
angel or demon, but less than a singular supreme deity, then such a religion recognizes a pantheistic
or multiple deity perspective of the universe and heaven, even if such a conclusion is repudiated and
denied by the religion itself.
Canon 3654
All religions that profess a singular supreme deity above all other forms also presume a supreme
being with a dual personality, even if the negative aspect of such an absolute dichotomy of a single
supreme deity representing absolute holiness and simultaneously absolute evil is hidden, repudiated
or poorly explained.
Canon 3655
All deity less than a singular supreme deity exists in dimension and is dependent upon a dimension
known variously as the Heaven and as the Unique Collective Awareness.
Art icle 33 - God
Canon 3656
A god, or God is a form of supernatural immortal deity with superior powers compared to lesser deity
and spiritual forces. Therefore, a God is considered a supreme supernatural being above all others.
Canon 3657
As valid Divine Law recognizes that life and existence is a dream in motion in accordance with the
Canons of valid Natural Law, so long as a God is believed to exist and worshipped as existing, it has
valid existence.
Canon 3658
Belief, worship and subsequent existence of a God is separate to any claimed power or influence as
attributes of a particular God. All spiritual forces remain subject to Divine Law and the limits of
Natural Law.
Canon 3659
In accordance with a particular faith, a god, or God may represent a spiritual force of supreme
goodness, sanctity and holiness, a spiritual force of great destruction, negativity and ill intent, or
possessing a duality personality of both good and evil. The term god and even God do not indicate
whether a deity is a divine positive or a divine malevolent being.
Canon 3660
As the term god or God on its own does not indicate a supreme benevolent, or malevolent force, no
presumption can be properly made, even by inference, as to what kind of deity is being worshipped
unless the Religion makes it abundantly clear.
Canon 3661
When the term god is qualified as Lord God, then this unmistakably implies a supreme malevolent
force as the term Lord is historically reserved and synonymous with “Ba’al” as the “Master of the
slaves” in direct contradiction to a benevolent supreme being.
Canon 3662
Any religion that worships a God whereby the followers are forced to depreciate themselves and all
other Homo Sapiens as “sheep” or other form of animals absolutely implies a God representing a
malevolent supreme being as such belief is contradictory to all valid Divine Law, Natural Law and
Positive Law.
Canon 3663
By definition, any God that demonstrates or professes negative emotions such as jealousy such as “I
am a jealous God”, hate or anger is a malevolent spirit, less than the absolute Divine Creator.
Jealousy implies a lesser perceived status of self compared to some equal or higher being.
Canon 3664
As existence depends upon the immutability of valid Natural Law, no spiritual force, including the
Absolute, the one, the ALL can abrogate, suspend or change a single Natural Law without causing the
collective dream of existence to collapse. Therefore, no God possesses the power to abrogate,
suspend or change any valid Natural Law.
Canon 3665
By definition, the claimed existence of one set of emotions and morals as attributes to a Supreme
God necessarily implies the existence of the opposite set of emotions and morals as the existence of
one depends upon the existence of the other. Therefore, to claim a Supreme God expresses love is
to imply the same Supreme God expresses hate. The only other possible explanation is two separate
and lesser deities – one good and one evil – which implies the claim a God is also the Supreme Being
is a deliberate fraud.
Canon 3666
Any religion that professes allegiance to a Supreme God they claim expresses emotions such as love
and compassion, including moral judgments without also admitting such a Supreme Being by their own
admissions must also be supremely hateful and immoral is a fraud of logic and concealment, with any
such scripture and teachings null and void from the beginning.
Canon 3667
By definition, the claimed existence of a Supreme God separate in some way and above the realm of
morals and emotions does not imply a dual personality, but a whole. Therefore, such a Supreme God
expresses neither love, nor hate only existence and awareness.
Art icle 34 - Divine Creat or
Canon 3668
The Divine Creator is the Supreme deity and God of all gods. In accordance with these canons and
the most sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum, there is no higher possible deity or god than
The Divine Creator of All.
Canon 3669
The Divine Creator is equivalent to the valid term Unique Collective Awareness when describing the
Divine Creator as the greatest, most perfect dimension and existence.
Canon 3670
The Divine Creator is equivalent to the valid term UCADIA representing the set of all sets of objects
and concepts being Unique Collective Awareness of DIA, or units of pure and perfect meaning.
Canon 3671
The Divine Creator is equivalent to the valid term ALL representing Awareness Loves Life and the
expression and answer of all questions, all reason and purpose of existence including the process of
creation.
Canon 3672
The Divine Creator is not equivalent but greater than the term Universal Consciousness as a dream
cannot exist without a dreamer.
Canon 3673
In accordance with Natural Law, anything less than Unique Collective Awareness and existence would
not be possible.
Canon 3674
No deity or god less than the Divine Creator can by logic be greater than the Divine Creator.
Canon 3675
All authority of the Divine Creator is bestowed in Trust to the Society of One Heaven and no other.
Art icle 35 - UCADIA
Canon 3676
UCADIA is a pure description for the Divine Creator, also known as the Absolute, the ALL, the IS, the
one and Unique Collective Awareness.
Canon 3677
The difference between the title UCADIA and Unique Collective Awareness, is that UCADIA means
Unique Collective Awareness of DIA. DIA are pure symbolic representations of meaning, the units of
meaning upon which the UCADIAN language of pure symbolic semantic meaning is constructed.
Therefore UCADIA defines all form, all meaning and the Universe, while UCA defines the highest
dimension upon which the Universe is created.
Canon 3678
The term Divine Creator and UCADIA are equivalent. However, the term UCADIA is a superior technical
term when defining the highest, greatest possible god or deity.
Canon 3679
In accordance with these canons and the Sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, there is no
greater god, nor deity than UCADIA. Therefore, any Religion or Cult that claims worship of a god or
deity equal or greater than UCADIA is automatically a fraud and false doctrine immediately rendered
null and void from the beginning, having no lawful authority whatsoever.
Canon 3680
In accordance with these canons and the sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, all power,
rights and authority of UCADIA is vested in Trust to the Society of One Heaven and valid Ucadian
Societies. Therefore, any claim of equal or higher authority by any person, aggregate, religion or cult
that does not have the authority of One Heaven is null and void from the beginning.
Art icle 36 - Soul
Canon 3681
Soul is a term used to define the spirit, essence and divine personality of a higher order life form that
co-exists with the flesh vessel during life, but believed to separate at death. A soul is not believed to
possess any particular material form of its own and thus is considered purely ethereal and
supernatural.
Canon 3682
As the Soul is considered the Unique Collective Awareness and experience of a higher order life form,
the term "Soul" and mind are considered equivalent. In this sense, mind is considered "non-locational"
and separate from physical cognitive abilities such as higher brain functions.
Canon 3683
As valid Divine Law recognizes that life and existence is a dream of Unique Collective Awareness in
motion in accordance with the Canons of valid Natural Law, the term Soul and Mind are equivalent to
Unique Collective Awareness.
Canon 3684
Given the Soul is equivalent to Divine Personality, the term Soul is equivalent to the Divine Person
created by the Divine Creator through the creation of a unique Divine Trust for every man, woman and
higher order being that has ever lived or will live now and forever more.
Canon 3685
As the Soul is equivalent to the Divine Person of a Divine Trust in accordance with these Canons, a
Soul cannot be sold, forfeited, suspended, extinguished, split or seized. Any claims to the contrary of
this canon are automatically null and void from the beginning.
Canon 3686
Just as the Divine Person of a Divine Trust is equivalent to a Soul, the True Person of a True Trust is
equivalent to a flesh vessel. Therefore, the soul is a separate trust created before any flesh vessel.
Canon 3687
In accordance with Natural Law, nothing that is unreal can become real and return to unreal.
Therefore, any description that states the soul or mind enters the body at birth and then leaves at
death is false and deliberately misleading.
Art icle 37 - Angel
Canon 3688
An Angel is defined as a divine and supernatural messenger from a deity, a god or other divine entity.
In its original meaning, the term Angel did not imply a divine spirit possessing only positive attributes.
Hence, in its true sense, an “angel” is equivalent to the term Demon as well as Genius.
Canon 3689
As valid Divine Law recognizes that life and existence is a dream in motion in accordance with the
Canons of valid Natural Law, so long as an Angel is believed to exist and worshipped as existing, it
has valid existence.
Canon 3690
Angels exist in the faith, theology and dogma of most major religions, albeit under different names
and classifications.
Canon 3691
The distinction of Angels only possessing benevolent and positive attributes originated through
Occult Dualism with the deliberate separation of specific divine beings into two distinct personalities.
Hence, under certain occult dogma, Angels became the good aspect, while Demons became the
negative aspect of the same entity.
Canon 3692
In accordance with these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, all
Angels pledge their allegiance to One Heaven and no other.
Canon 3693
Any Religion or Cult that claims authority or influence concerning one or more Angels, it is either
through granted authority of One Heaven, or such a claim is a deliberate fraud and falsity. Where any
Religion or Cult claims a fraud against these canons, such claims are automatically null and void from
the beginning, having no spiritual force whatsoever.
Art icle 38 - Demon
Canon 3694
A Demon is a term meaning a supernatural or divine spirit. In its original meaning, the term Demon did
not imply a divine spirit possessing only negative attributes. Hence, in its true sense, a “demon” is
equivalent to the term Angel as well as Genius and Jinn in the Islamic culture.
Canon 3695
As valid Divine Law recognizes that life and existence is a dream in motion in accordance with the
Canons of valid Natural Law, so long as a Demon is believed to exist and worshipped as existing, it
has valid existence.
Canon 3696
Demons exist in the faith, theology and dogma of most major religions, albeit under different names
and classifications.
Canon 3697
The distinction of Demons only possessing malevolent and negative attributes originated through
Occult Dualism with the deliberate separation of specific divine beings into two distinct personalities.
Hence, under certain occult dogma, Demons became the negative aspect while Angels became the
good aspect of the same entity.
Canon 3698
In accordance with these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, all
Demons pledge their allegiance to One Heaven and no other.
Canon 3699
Any Religion or Cult that claims authority or influence concerning one or more Demons, it is either
through granted authority of One Heaven, or such a claim is a deliberate fraud and falsity. Where any
Religion or Cult claims a fraud against these canons, such claims are automatically null and void from
the beginning, having no spiritual force whatsoever.
Canon 3700
Any person, group or entity that pledges their allegiance to one or more Demons and does not
recognize the supreme authority of these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum De
Singularis Caelum is guilty of extreme dishonor and therefore is immediately devoid of any spiritual
influence or authority whatsoever.
Canon 3701
In accordance with the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, all Demons have sworn a
sacred, irrevocable and solemn vow to pursue, hound, harass and remove from the Earth each and
every person, group or entity that claims to worship one or more Demons but reject these canons
and One Heaven.
Art icle 39 - Spirit
Canon 3702
A spirit is a term used to generically define an independent supernatural force less than a god.
Hence, spirit may be applied to mean the undying essence of a human being, equivalent to the
concept of soul. Spirit may also be applied to mean a ghost, angel, demon or some other entity.
Canon 3703
In accordance with these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, all
Spirits pledge their allegiance to One Heaven and no other.
Art icle 40 - Ghost
Canon 3704
A Ghost is the manifestation of a visible Form by a spirit of a deceased person or animal capable of
being seen by one or more living persons.
Canon 3705
As Life is a Dream of Unique Collective Awareness in motion, everything is Mind, everything is spirit.
Therefore, there is no law in the universe preventing a Mind no longer attached to a physical body
from entering the collective dream of the universe and then returning in an instant to a different
dimension of Heaven.
Canon 3706
Every member of the Homo Sapien species needs to enter a kind of “ghost state” in effectively
permitting the Mind to temporarily detach and recharge from its physical body for a short period
during sleep on a regular basis.Thus, maintaining a consciousness state of “self” fatigues the mind.
Canon 3707
In accordance with Natural Law, no physical law of the Universal dream may be broken without
causing the dream to collapse. Therefore, all manifestations by ghosts are within Natural Law. In
Nature, nothing can cross the boundary from unreal, to real except unique collective awareness.
Canon 3708
When the Mind, also known as the Soul and Divine Person is naturally connected to a flesh vessel of a
higher species, the brain automates the functions of body manipulation representing the harnessing
of matter. As a result, knowledge of matter manipulation by consciousness alone is rarely acquired as
a skill in life.
Canon 3709
When seeking to consciously manifest as a ghost, all higher order species instinctively assume a
volume and size of space approximating the dimensions of their body in life. Therefore, the most
common manifestation of a ghost is a cold column of air.
Canon 3710
When seeking to consciously manifest as a ghost, all higher order species instinctively assume their
strength and power based upon the limits of their physical bodies in life. This is a limit of
consciousness, not the physical laws of the Universe.
Canon 3711
As the manipulation of space approximating the same dimensions of their body in life is instinctively
the most common form of manifestation for ghosts, the manipulation and harnessing of free electro-
magnetic radiation is the second most common form of manifestation as orbs, streaks, shadows,
mists and occasionally translucent or realistic-life like visions. Electronic-Voice Phenomena is also an
example of electro-magnetic radiation manipulation.
Canon 3712
When a mind can harness and focus its consciousness as a ghost to a point, then its ability to
manipulate objects through changes in density of air and electro-magnetic fields is enhanced. Minds
that are grounded and engulfed in extreme emotions, possess greater natural ability in object focus,
despite also being in conscious awareness.
Canon 3713
As all ghost manifestation is a product of conscious self, all ghost apparitions fatigue the mind,
causing all manifestations to be temporary events.
Canon 3714
Given the need of available electro-magnetic energy to assist in a manifestation, the most significant
events is the high present of electrical equipment with high electro-magnetic fields, or naturally
occurring events such as full-moon high tides, storms and lightning.
Canon 3715
The presence of certain types of rock, particular quartz acts as a battery and capacitor in storing
electro-magnetic energy.
Canon 3716
While all Minds have the power to return to the dimension of the Universal dream and temporarily
manifest in some way as ghosts, the most common apparitions and phenomena are residual haunting,
based on traumatic events whereby the natural environment repeats the embedded event over and
over in the situation of suitable sources of electro-magnetic energy.
Art icle 41 - Lord
Canon 3717
The word Lord was first created in the 8th Century CE under the introduction of Carolingian (Frank)
Law as the title of the highest form of noble below a sovereign. The term Lord is derived from the
Latin laudis meaning “worthy or meritous”.
Canon 3718
Under 8th Century Carolingian law, a Lord was “sovereign” of their own domain being a Marche
(march, or mark) which was then divided into Maners administered by Barons. In accord with Sacré Loi
(Sacred Law) and the first true laws of the Catholicus Ecclesia (Catholic Church) since the 8th
Century, a Lord could legally and lawfully be disinherited if they were incompetent or immoral in
character.
Canon 3719
Under the introduction of the corrupt law form of the Roman Cult in the 13th Century, the fiduciary
obligations of Lord were depreciated and the meaning added as “master and ruler” over the general
population as nothing more than “creatures”. Hence, Lord became synonymous with the worst
system of enslavement ever conceived, whereby a person and their family may be considered
perpetual slaves in accordance with some “divine right” possessed and proscribed by the Lord.
Hence the word “Lord” is equivalent to “Master of slaves”.
Canon 3720
When used in conjunction with the word “god”, the term “Lord God” or “lord god” is a formal title for
Ba’al Moloch and Ba’al Hammon, not the Divine Creator as Lord always implies a lesser deity claiming
superior rights, not possessing them.
Canon 3721
As the original and true etymology of the word Lord demands virtue, honor and competency, all
corrupt definitions are hereby rendered null and void, without legitimacy or force ecclesiastically,
lawfully or legally.
Canon 3722
All claimants to the title Lord are without legitimacy unless they demonstrate in Will and character
such qualities in action as the true and original meaning of the term in accord with Sacré Loi (Sacred
Law) and the first true laws of the Catholicus Ecclesia (Catholic Church) since the 8th Century CE.
2.3 Supernatural Phenomena
Canon 3723
A Miracle is an ancient religious term used to define any wonderful, marvelous and amazing event
attributed to Divine intervention.
Canon 3724
The most significant miracles of ancient civilization were not physical events, but the manifestation of
knowledge, believed divine, which assisted civilizations and enhanced quality of life such as rule of
law, invention, scripture, revelation, government, systems and know-how.
Canon 3725
In more recent centuries, the meaning of “miracle” has been deliberately corrupted by several
Religions and Cults to mean any wonderful event considered as a perceptible interruption to the laws
of nature attributed in part or whole to devotion towards a valid Religious or Cult figure or
associated deity or spirit.
Canon 3726
While the ancient concept of a miracle permitted the evidence of the event itself to be proof, the
more recent corrupted meaning of miracle now places undue emphasis on a “valid” miracle being the
result of validation of the dogma of the particular Religion or Cult, not necessarily the significance of
the supernatural event.
Canon 3727
While the ancient concept of a miracle placed greater emphasis on divine wisdom, the deliberate
corruption of miracle by certain Religions and Cults massively depreciate the miracle of wisdom in
favor of superficial physical cures and highly suggestive atmospheric and effects of light and
subjective interpretation. Thus the significance of miracles themselves have been deliberately
corrupted.
Canon 3728
Due to the deliberate corruptions of the concept of miracle, many followers of Cults are falsely taught
to believe the offensive doctrine to only trust what they authorize as official miracles because “the
devil” can perform miracles. Thus, any significant “miracle” not authorized by the leaders of the Cult
may perversely be attacked by its ignorant followers as “the work of the Devil”.
Canon 3729
Due to the deliberate manipulation by Cult leaders of their followers as Cretins, many miracles
claimed by Cults may be attributed to hoaxes, theatrical magic and blatant fraud.
Canon 3730
Contrary to the deliberately false and misleading teachings of Cults, the laws of nature cannot be
suspended without destroying existence. Therefore, all miracles can be explained as extraordinary
events still within the boundaries of Natural Law in accordance with these canons.
Canon 3731
The assertion that with divine providence God, or some other supernatural deity regularly works
through created nature, yet is free to work without, above or against it to create miracles, defies
Divine Law, Natural Law and Positive Law.
Canon 3732
As the Universe is Unique Collective Awareness in motion, the most significant form of miracle is and
has always been the appearance of extraordinary, marvelous and wonderful divine wisdom. However,
due to the corrupting influence of Cults, the miracle of divine knowledge is rarely recognized, or even
respected by followers of such Cults.
Canon 3733
Contrary to the deliberately false and misleading teachings of Cults, a miracle by its very nature and
original meaning is a wonderful, amazing and extraordinary Divine event, without any need for it to
validate or repudiate Cult dogma. Furthermore, any teachings that claim non authorized miracles are
the “work of the devil” is the utmost and offensive fraud and immediately, null and void having no
force or effect.
Canon 3734
The tradition of Cults that demand a certain number of authorized “miracles” in order to validate a
Cult figure as a Saint is hereby banned as deliberately false and misleading, designed not to respect
and recognize divine intervention, but to minimize and hide its impact by repudiating all miracles,
except those that suit the leadership of the particular Cult.
Canon 3735
Any Cult that continues the deliberate practice of corrupting miracles to validate its own dogma
through the practice of ignorance and superstitution is guilty of a grave offence against all spirits,
deities and Divine forces and therefore by such action willingly consents, proclaims and confesses to
hold no ecclesiastical power, authority or influence.
Art icle 43 - Precognit ion
Canon 3736
Precognition is a term used to define an ancient belief that certain people at certain times have the
ability to foresee elements of future events. The terms premonition, and presentiment are qualities of
precognition through emotions.
Canon 3737
The supernatural ability associated with Precognition, Premonition and Presentiment is known as
Clairvoyance.
Canon 3738
In accordance with Divine Law and Natural Law, an effect (future) cannot occur before its cause
(present). Therefore, the concepts of Predetermination and fixed Destiny are wholly false. Therefore
any Precognition, Premonition and Presentiment can only be future possibilities, not certainties.
Canon 3739
As the universe and existence is unique collective awareness in motion, there is no law of nature that
precludes precognition, premonition or presentiment of future possibilities.
Canon 3740
The nature and necessity of rules of Natural law to preserve existence gives rise to a level of
“predictability” in the sequence of events known as the laws of possibility. Thus all Precognition,
Premonition and Presentiment is possible, yet alterable to the extent that the predictable sequence
of events itself is altered changing likely outcomes.
Canon 3741
The receiving of a Precognition, Premonition or Presentiment itself materially affects the possible
outcomes of the future, by affecting the present, therefore proving that Predetermination and fixed
Destiny are wholly false. Thus, such visions are more appropriately spiritual attempts to change
future possibilities rather than reinforcements of alleged fixed destiny.
Art icle 44 - Aura
Canon 3742
Aura is a term used to describe both the phenomena and the ability for certain people to perceive
the electro-magnetic fields as well as the state of mind and health of living things as collections of
colour around the body of the living entity.
Canon 3743
Aura is a perceptual ability, not a scientific phenomenon. While all living things have electro-magnetic
fields, they are insufficient to produce noticeable surface charge to create visible colors through
normal scientific detection equipment.Thus any perceived color is perceptual interpretation of
cognitive and psychic ability rather than some invisible actual field.
Canon 3744
As the continuation of existence does not permit the laws of nature to be broken, the phenomena of
Aura and the ability of certain people to “see” such colors is explainable within the laws of nature in
accordance with these canons.
Canon 3745
People possessing heightened sensitivity and psychic abilities may use a range of senses to process
this additional information, without such information actually existing within the physical realm,
including sight, taste, touch, smell, hearing, balance, temperature, dimensional reference and emotion.
Thus people who can “see” auras interpret psychic information through the extension of the sense of
sight and ambient temperature.
Canon 3746
Aura cameras and other photographic devices are purely theatrical devices of no scientific nor
spiritual merit.
Art icle 45 - Polt ergeist
Canon 3747
A Poltergeist is a term meaning a troublesome spirit or other supernatural force typified by loud
unexplained noises, the movement of objects and general extreme fear and distress of people and
animals witnessing such events.
Canon 3748
As the integrity of the laws of Nature is fundamental to existence itself, all Poltergeist activity may be
explained within Natural Law and Divine Law in accordance with these canons.
Canon 3749
There are three main forms and sources of genuine Poltergeist activity:
Canon 3750
The most common source of Poltergeist activity is Anomalous Environmental-Geological Conditions
caused by a number of contributing factors including the age, type and condition of construction
materials of a building, the geological material of the location, prevailing environmental conditions.
High electro-magnetic radiation from overhead powerlines, radio towers or poor electrical wiring is
also a major contributing factor. In the case of old wooden structures, underground streams, voids,
and construction on electro-magnetically active rock such as quartz, granite and limestone have all
been shown as contributing factors to Poltergeist activity through Anomalous Environmental-
Geological Conditions.
Canon 3751
The second most common form of Poltergeist activity is Extreme Bio-Feedback Loops most commonly
experienced by adolescent females or any traumatized children which can create an extreme
negative bio-feedback that feeds on itself manifesting in the focusing and externalizing of these fears
into an actual independent negative spiritual presence. Anomalous Environmental-Geological
Conditions may also be a contributing factor.
Canon 3752
The rarest form of Poltergeist activity is a Disruptive Intelligent Haunting caused by the presence of a
Ghost in some state of extreme emotional distress manifested through Poltergeist activity.
Canon 3753
Excluding Anomalous Environmental-Geological Conditions which may be a permanent feature of an
existing building, Poltergeist activity caused by Extreme Bio-Feedback Loops and Disruptive
Intelligent Haunting may generally be resolved by addressing the root cause contributing of the
effect, rather than the effects themselves.
Art icle 46 - Conjurat ion
Canon 3754
Conjuration is a traditional term used to describe the use of any occult or magic ritual involving
incantations, charms, spells to attempt to invoke one or more spirits to appear or interact. The
conjuration of ghosts or souls of the deceased for the purpose of divination is called necromancy.
Canon 3755
A primary focus on texts such as grimoires of black magic, witchcraft and alleged occult knowledge is
Conjuration not only the purpose of divination but control.
Canon 3756
The practice of Conjuration is a major feature of almost all Religions and Cults, usually for the
conjuration of positive spirits. However, several Cults with strong Duality embedded deeply within
their doctrine seek to evoke and invoke negative spiritual energy through the same rituals.
Canon 3757
The use of Ouija, spirit or talking boards is an example of Conjuration, which occasionally results in
spirit connection usually through unconscious motion of the conjurer(s), interpreting such acts as the
effect of an external source.
Canon 3758
As Conjuration principally rests on magic, the most important ingredient for its alleged success is
belief by the conjuror and practitioners as well as the alleged spirits attempting to be contacted that
the occult knowledge and magic is authentic.
Canon 3759
As belief is such a fundamental element to any alleged success to Conjuration, extreme and negative
ritual to bolster belief has traditionally been part of conjuration since the first Religions and Cults
including animal sacrifice, human sacrifice, orgies, drugs and other sensory stimulation to heighten
belief.
Canon 3760
Other than the power of belief and its ability to manipulate and corrupt the minds of the living and the
deceased, there is no Divine Law, nor Natural Law that validates Conjuration. Therefore, most
Conjuration is a mixture of ancient traditions, made-up rituals and meaningless waffle that gains its
power primarily from the use of extreme theatrics to enhance belief in its authenticity.
Canon 3761
The second major presumption of Conjuration is the authority of the conjuror to demand or summons
a spirit to appear.As all spirits, entities, gods, deities, angels and demons have sworn a solemn and
irrevocable vow of allegiance to the sacred Covenant of One Heaven and no other, no Religion or
Cult has any ecclesiastical or spiritual power whatsoever.
Canon 3762
When deceased spirits no longer believe the made-up waffle that represents most Conjurations, then
no amount of extreme theatrics by the living have any effect on commanding a spirit to appear or
interact.
Canon 3763
As no Religion or Cult has any ecclesiastical or spiritual power whatsoever to Conjure and control any
spirit, any deliberate attempted Conjuration by the leaders of a Religion or Cult is an insult against
united Heaven and Hell and all spirits.
Canon 3764
When the leaders of a Religion or Cult seek to claim control of any spirits through curse, spell, ritual
of any kind of Conjuration, such action represents a direct and present injury, insult and challenge
against all the united forces of spirits, deities, angels and demons of United Heaven and Hell.
Therefore, by such deliberate action the leaders responsible full consent, agree and call to be placed
under a formal Binding in accordance with the sacred covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum and for
the most powerful of angels and demons to comply to their request and ensure they are hounded,
harassed and spiritually terrorized until their souls are torn from their bodies and their flesh vessels
return to dust.
Art icle 47 - Levit at ion
Canon 3765
Levitation is the process by which an object is suspended by some physical effect against the effects
of gravity particle fields, without solid physical contact. Despite there being a number of techniques
that may create levitation, it is also regarded as a supernatural phenomenon due to its frequent use
in theatrical magic and occasional experience in poltergeist and active haunting.
Canon 3766
As no Natural law is permitted to be temporarily suspended without causing the collapse of the
universal dream, all cases of levitation may be explained within the laws of nature.
Canon 3767
There are three primary causes of Levitation being: (1) Theatrical fraud; (2) Controlled Scientific
Conditions; and (3) Spontaneous Haunting Phenonema.
Canon 3768
The most common example of Levitation is Theatrical fraud most frequently practiced with Theatrical
Magic, but also promoted on occasion by leaders of Cults as a way of continuing to deceive
followers.
Canon 3769
The second most common example of Levitation is Controlled Scientific Conditions through the use of
such techniques as space (vacuum), electro-magnetic fields, acoustics, electrostatics and gases.
Canon 3770
The rarest example of Levitation is Spontaneous Haunting Phenomena whereby a ghost through
space (vacuum) and electro-magnetic field manipulation reduces the density of a certain object
creating the effect of its flotation in apparent defiance of the laws of nature.
Art icle 48 - Possession
Canon 3771
Possession is the belief that a deity, god, spirit, demon or some other entity may temporarily inhabit
the body of a higher order life form such as a Homo Sapien, resulting in noticeable changes in
personality, knowledge, health and behaviour.
Canon 3772
Noticeable changes in personality, knowledge, health and behaviour are believed to be key
preconditions and proof of any alleged possession, excluding misdiagnosed or undiagnosed mental
illness. This is in spite of the logical and reasonable conclusion that a “valid possession” by a certain
entity could conceivably occur without any outward noticeable changes whatsoever.
Canon 3773
The belief in possession is a common feature in the majority of ancient and contemporary Religions
and Cults. The two most common forms of possession believed to exist are spirit possession and
demonic possession.
Canon 3774
As mind is awareness, there is nothing in Natural Law that precludes the possibility of possession
other than the intrinsically strong bind between a mind and its brain and body. In all historic examples
of genuine possession, such episodes have normally been temporary on account of the excessive
amount of fatigue possession inflicts upon the possessing entity.
Canon 3775
Historically a range of mental illnesses have been misdiagnosed as forms of possession including
psychosis, hysteria, mania, tourette’s syndrome, epilepsy, schizophrenia and dissociative identity
disorder. This misdiagnosis of mental illness as possession continues in many poorly educated
regions of the world, especially dominated by Cults.
Canon 3776
The key emphasis and presumption that possession may be demonstrated by outward physical and
behavioral signs of change, not only favors misdiagnosis of mental illness as possession in ignorant
Cult dominated societies, but permits individuals in such societies to relatively easily feign outward
signs of possession for wanted attention, notoriety or some other personal motive.
Canon 3777
Evidence exists that certain Religions have developed sophisticated rituals to enable spirit
possession and to test and determine genuine possession from fake possession, in particularly
certain indigenous cultures.
Canon 3778
Evidence exists that certain people have genuinely appeared to have been afflicted by possession of
malevolent spirits. However, in almost all cases such spirits appear to be a vengeful or negative
spirit of a man or woman pretending to be demonic, rather than any genuine ancient arch-demon. This
is evidenced by the general ignorance of knowledge, history, language and genuine occult of such
possessing entities and their predilection for stereotypical Cult dogma.
Canon 3779
The forced removal of any unwanted or malevolent spirit possession is most frequently called
exorcism. The significance of the ritual most often is associated with the culture of belief of all
participants. The more ignorant and influenced by Cults, often the more theatrical the ritual of
exorcism in antithesis to the deliberate theatrical display of fake possession.
Art icle 49 - Voices
Canon 3780
Voices are audible or recorded disembodied communication usually associated with haunting for
which there is no rational or reasonable explanation. The most common voice phenomenon is
electronic voice phenomena.
Canon 3781
Electronic Voice Phenomena (EVP) are sounds captured electronically that resemble speech after all
logical sources have been rationally and reasonably excluded including intentional or accidental voice
recordings or renderings, modified static, background noise or stray transmission interference.
Canon 3782
The most common form of Electronic Voice Phenomena is associated with residual haunting, whereby
significant or traumatic events are replayed within an environment during heightened amounts of
electro-magnetic field energy such as storms, high tides and natural events.
Canon 3783
The rarest form of Electronic Voice Phenomena is intelligent haunting whereby a ghost seeks to
interact with intelligent answers.
Canon 3784
As the natural background and static noise of electronic equipment and field emitting equipment is a
source of raw material by which a ghost may use its ability to distort space to produce a recording,
EVP’s are more easily recorded on devices with poorer recording quality than digital devices with
better quality, lower natural background static.
Art icle 50 - Haunt ing
Canon 3785
Haunting is the term used to define the presence of one or more Ghosts inhabiting a building or
location. A Haunting are defined as either Residual or Intelligent.
Canon 3786
The most common form of Haunting is a Residual Haunting which involves the repeated playback of
auditory, visual and other sensory phenomena of previous events without apparent intelligent
awareness of the living world and interacting with or responding to it.
Canon 3787
The least common form of Haunting is an Intelligent Haunting which involves one or more Ghosts
residing in a building or location, aware of the living world and capable of interacting with or
responding to it.
Canon 3788
As the universe is Unique Collective Awareness in motion, nothing concerning haunting contravenes
the law of Nature. All phenomena may be explained as either one of three things: (1) Genuine
Haunting; (2) Misinterpretation of Natural Phenomena or (3) Fraud and Hoax.
Canon 3789
Not all events that repeat as Residual Haunting are formed by traumatic events. However,
heightened emotional state and the presence of a charged environment appear preconditions for the
imprinting of a memory that may replay in years to come as a Residual Haunting.
Canon 3790
A Building of significance and age may have several forms of Residual Haunting as well as Intelligent
Haunting at the same time.
Canon 3791
The most common form of Intelligent Haunting is when one or more spirits return to significant older
buildings as favorite places during their lives, not necessarily places of extreme brutality and
violence.
Canon 3792
The site of extreme brutality and violence does not always mean there will automatically be
Intelligent Haunting, but often Residual Haunting mistaken for intelligent.
Canon 3793
The most common entry and manifestation of a ghost into a room during a haunting is not through a
doorway, but right angle corners of the ceiling representing the strongest electro-magnetic field
points of in a square room.
Canon 3794
It does not follow that a spirit needs to have had an association with a location in life to take up
residence as an Intelligent Haunting. A spirit may be attracted to a location for a number of reasons.
However, the most common reasons for an Intelligent Haunting is the presence of some remains of
the body of the deceased spirit still present, some history and association with the location, or some
item of furniture or property within the location of personal significance.
2.4 Supernatural Ability
Canon 3795
A Psychic is a person who claims to possess, or appears to possess, extra-sensory perceptions
(ESP) such as precognition, clairvoyance and telepathy, or who appears to be susceptible to
paranormal or supernatural influence.
Canon 3796
By definition, any person who claims to possess, or appears to possess supernatural abilities such as
clairvoyance, mediumship, telepathy, remote viewing, psychometry or psychokinesis is also claiming
to be Psychic.
Canon 3797
As the function of the universe does not permit the corruption of natural law and therefore the
existence of “supernatural” law, all psychic abilities may be explained as either genuine phenomena
within Divine Law and Natural Law, or a hoax and fraud.
Art icle 52 - Clairvoyance
Canon 3798
Clairvoyance is the ability to gather certain historical, contemporary or future information about an
object, person, location or physical event through means beyond what is known and accepted as
normal human senses, hence “extra-sensory perception” (ESP). A person said to have the ability of
clairvoyance is referred to as a clairvoyant.
Canon 3799
As the Universe itself is Unique Collective Awareness in motion expressed as a Living Dream and
Clairvoyance is about finding Unique Collective Awareness not otherwise gained through normal
human senses within the collective dream, there is nothing paranormal, supernatural or extra-sensory
about this ability.
Canon 3800
Clairvoyance is perfectly reasonable, possible and demonstrable under the Divine Law and Natural
Law in accordance with these canons.
Canon 3801
The primary obstacle to receiving genuine Clairvoyance is the existence of self, especially ego in
separating, guessing, interpreting and isolating mind from the greater Unique Collective Awareness.
The primary obstacle to genuine interpretation of Clairvoyance is the absence of self confidence,
experience, intuition and ego. Therefore, self is both the primary obstacle and observer of Clairvoyant
experiences.
Canon 3802
Fortune Telling, Tarot Card Reading, Palm Reading, Tea Leaf Reading and Crystal Ball Gazing are all
forms of Clairvoyance using common objects known to the Psychic as a tool to help focus their
alleged Clairvoyant skills.
Canon 3803
There are primarily three types of Clairvoyant:
Canon 3804
Overwhelmingly the most common form of Clairvoyant is the Professional Guesser, who most often
uses the assortment of tools such as Tarot Cards, Angel Cards and other items to interact with the
person in order to glean more information and refine their guesses.
Canon 3805
A rare form of Clairvoyant is the Genuine Seer, who demonstrates their skill without the associated
theatrical dress and garb associated with Fortune Tellers and Professional Guessers.
Canon 3806
The rarest form of Clairvoyant is the Gifted Amateur, not because so few people possess the skill,
but because so many doubt themselves and their natural intuition and abilities. As Gifted Amateurs
are a clear and present threat to Professional Fortune Tellers and Guessers, many learn to doubt
their skill after unfortunately confessing or demonstrating such abilities to a Fortune Teller or
Professional Guesser.
Art icle 53 - Mediumship
Canon 3807
Mediumship is the claimed ability of a person to establish, experience and recall certain contacts with
spirits of the deceased, or other spirit entities. A person said to have the ability of mediumship is
referred to as a medium.
Canon 3808
There are two types of mediumship: Genuine and Theatrical. Genuine Mediumship is when a medium
genuinely is able to connect and recall facts, contacts and personal messages from deceased minds.
Theatrical Mediumship is overwhelmingly the most common form of medium that uses techniques of
manipulation, auto-suggestion and natural patterns to suggest a connection when none exists.
Canon 3809
As existence itself is unique collective awareness in motion, everything is mind in motion; therefore
the concept of Genuine Mediumship does not contravene any Natural Laws, nor Divine Law or Positive
Law.
Canon 3810
Any genuine communication through mediumship is through mind suggestions, which may be
expressed as metaphor, allegory, image, perceived audio, taste, feeling, smell and even
daydreaming. A medium may believe such information to have physical manifestation, but all
information remains interpretation of mind.
Canon 3811
Any person claiming medium status who also claims to summons the dead, or see the dead, or imply
the dead are embracing their loved ones is almost certainly a Theatrical Medium.
Canon 3812
The paradox of mediumship is that a Professional Theatrical Medium can provide greater level of
comfort and personal satisfaction to an audience than a genuine but poorly trained medium, even
though such a show by a theatrical medium is predicated on fraud. This is because the best
professional theatrical mediums know reinforcement of positive belief, validation of hope and closure
of regrets are all necessary qualities of healing that far outweigh proving genuine psychic ability.
Art icle 54 - Healing
Canon 3813
Healing is the exceptionally rare and apparent supernatural ability of certain persons to use touch to
either infuse a healing influence or draw out a perceive ailment and therefore contribute to physical
healing.
Canon 3814
Healing is not to be confused with formalized systems of assistance such as various forms of
therapeutic massage, acupuncture and other traditional medicines, including Reiki. Instead, healing is
the phenomena that certain people have an ability to positively affect the health of another through
touch.
Canon 3815
Healing is not to be confused with the theatrical frauds often practiced in countries devoted to Cults
known as “Faith Healing” whereby apparent ailments is represented by the magical removal of
tumors representing the intestines of various animals.
Canon 3816
The exceptionally rare ability to heal by touch does not appear to require an extended period of
touch, nor any complex ritual of movement of the hands, simulating various massage techniques.
Instead, the healer appears to possess a power emanating from their hands able to heal others.
Art icle 55 - Remot e Viewing
Canon 3817
Remote Viewing (RV) is the ability to gather certain contemporary information about an object,
person, location or physical event at a significant distance through means beyond what is known and
accepted as normal human senses, hence “extra-sensory perception” (ESP).
Canon 3818
Remote Viewing is similar to Clairvoyance in that clairvoyance may also involve contemporary extra-
sensory perception (ESP) beyond historical or premonitions of future events. However, Clairvoyance
is passive reception of information, whereas Remote Viewing is the attempt of intentional
observation.
Canon 3819
Temporary disassociation of mind from body in cases of near death, trauma or extreme emotion is
not the same as Remote Viewing but “out of body” experience, normally involving the mind observing
the body within close proximity.
Canon 3820
As everything in the universe is constructed from Unique Collective Awareness in motion as Life is a
Dream, mind as awareness has the potential to travel to any point at any moment. Therefore Remote
Viewing does not contravene any Divine Law or Natural Law. However, there are three natural
restrictions limiting normal Remote Viewing (1) Mind-Collective Mind Connection; (2) Mind-Matter
Connection and (3) Body-Brain-Mind Connection.
Canon 3821
The first and traditionally greatest obstacle to intentional Remote Viewing is ignorance of the Mind-
Collective Mind Connection, or connection to Unique Collective Awareness. Thus an ignorance that the
Universe is a Dream and the ignorance of knowledge contained in UCADIA means any conscious
Homo-Sapien mind is unskilled to navigate collective mind beyond stereotypes and its limits of
ignorance.
Canon 3822
The second and related obstacle to intentional Remote Viewing is the natural focus of all mind and
matter to be relative, locational and unique. Therefore, the universe seeks to minimize the conscious
interconnection of mind, rather than the conscious physical connection of mind through matter to
matter. Thus in an absence of knowledge of the Canons of Natural Law, a person is ignorant of the
natural personality and behaviour of mind and matter.
Canon 3823
The third and related obstacle to conscious Remote Viewing is the body-brain-mind connection in all
higher order life naturally designed to prevent the loss of mind, not permit it. Thus genuine Remote
Viewing can only be achieved in a knowledgeable state of meditative, calm, lucid dreaming and only
with clear reference and return.
Canon 3824
Any claimed Remote Viewing without knowledge and skill as defined in accordance with these canons
is either a product of Clairvoyance or guessing or is a fraud and hoax.
Art icle 56 - Telepat hy
Canon 3825
Telepathy is the contemporary communication of information between one or more persons
concerning their thoughts and feelings at a distance, without direct communication, thus beyond what
is known and accepted as normal human senses, hence “extra-sensory perception” (ESP).
Canon 3826
As the universe is a dream of mind in motion, there is no Natural Law, nor Divine Law that denies the
possibility and ability of telepathy.
Canon 3827
Telepathy is not the same as Clairvoyance, which is passive extra sensory perception, nor Remove
Viewing which is intentional extra sensory perception, or Psychokinesis in the claimed influence of
matter.
Canon 3828
Telepathy is not the same as near mind synchronization which may be normally and naturally
experienced by people in close proximity and a synchronized state of mind, and airborne neuro-
transmitter/hormone exchange. Telepathy is at genuine distance so that micro-body movements and
physical information exchange is impossible.
Canon 3829
Telepathy is a connection between two or more minds to a temporary common mind dimension, or
temporary “collective dream” being a non-locational, non-physical connection capable of being
consciously recognized in the present moment. While Telepathy requires a specific state of body-
brain synchronization, the actual genuine transmission and reception of information is purely mind.
Canon 3830
As Telepathy is purely mind, no amount of concentration of intentional focus has any effect as the
brain itself is incapable of telepathic abilities.
Canon 3831
The understanding that two or more minds communicating telepathically can only do so through a
common collective temporary dream is rarely understood. When a trained telepathic mind projects to
communicate with another, the target is the collective accepted memory, not the location of the
other person and their body which is immaterial and irrelevant to mind. This collective and temporary
dream can be anything suitable to enable the exchange of mind capable of being understood and
easily perceived by both minds the same way so that it is in fact the same dimension and not two
versions of a similar dream.
Canon 3832
The clearer the common temporary collective dream between two people seeking to communicate
telepathically, the greater the chance both minds can meet in the same location and communicate.
Therefore a familiar, but relatively simple dimension is ideal, so that the minds are more likely to
arrive to the exact same dimension without distraction. This can be discussed, taught and perfected
before any attempt of telepathic communication.
Canon 3833
The limitations on genuine telepathy share some of the limits of Remote Viewing, associated with
general levels of ignorance of the Universe, Mind-Matter and Body-Brain-Mind Connection.
Canon 3834
The first and biggest obstacle to Telepathy is the complete ignorance by those who seek to
accomplish it as to how it can be genuinely accomplished within the laws of Nature, as opposed to
deliberate misinformation, theatrical frauds and high levels of ignorance of the structure of the
Universe. For example, the knowledge that telepathy can only be accomplished when there is a
common temporary dream in which both minds can connect has never been properly understood until
these canons.
Canon 3835
The second and related obstacle to intentional Telepathy is the discipline of constructing a common
and stable universal dimension. This can be enhanced, by helping minds focus on an image of a
neutral environment such as immersive computer animation whereby two or more people can
perceive themselves into the same simplified and neutral environment.
Canon 3836
The third and related obstacle to conscious Telepathy is achieving a knowledgeable state of
meditative, calm, lucid dreaming state permitting the mind to actually travel to this neutral collective
dream rather than remaining bound to the body and guessing what might be a conversation.
Canon 3837
Any claimed Telepathy without knowledge and skill as defined in accordance with these canons is
either a product of guessing or is a fraud and hoax.
Art icle 57 - Psychomet ry
Canon 3838
Psychometry is the claimed ability to sense or see and recall relevant associations of facts, events,
thoughts and feelings from an object of unknown history by making physical contact with that object
beyond what is known and accepted as normal human sense cognition, hence “extra-sensory
perception” (ESP).
Canon 3839
As the Universe itself is Unique Collective Awareness in motion expressed as a Living Dream and
Psychometry is about finding Unique Collective Awareness not otherwise gained through normal
human senses within the collective dream, there is nothing paranormal, supernatural or extra-sensory
about this ability.
Canon 3840
Psychometry is perfectly reasonable, possible and demonstrable under the Divine Law and Natural
Law in accordance with these canons.
Canon 3841
Psychometry is equivalent to a form of Empathetic Clairvoyance where typically the objects given to
the Clairvoyant are personal belongings to a person for whom information is sought. As most genuine
Clairvoyants are highly sensitive, the introduction of a personal object usually assists in focusing their
receptivity to any passive information received.
Canon 3842
The memories and images that a genuine clairvoyant obtains through psychometry are not “stored”
within objects, nor is there any kind of magical energy stored within the objects. Instead, a sensitive
psychic will often place themselves into a conscious meditative state using one or more target
objects that allow them to try to image how the person feels or felt using, wearing or holding the
object, thus attempting to improve the possible quality of information received.
Canon 3843
The quality of Clairvoyants using psychometry is the same challenge as finding genuine psychic
ability. However, the number of Clairvoyants offering psychometry readings is significantly less than
the number of alleged clairvoyants offering fortune telling and crystal ball gazing, primarily because
of the moral challenge faced when accepting psychometry readings, particularly in missing persons
and murder cases.
Art icle 58 - Psychokinesis
Canon 3844
Psychokinesis (PK) is the claimed ability to directly influence the behaviour of physical objects and
matter through the power of mind beyond what is known and accepted as normal human senses,
hence “extra-sensory perception” (ESP).
Canon 3845
The manipulation of objects by ghosts and spirits as poltergeists or intelligent haunting is
psychokinesis. Therefore psychokinesis is proven to be possible.
Canon 3846
The movement of an object by mind alone requires the same techniques as Levitation in the
alteration of fields, similar to field and space manipulation by ghosts and spirits as poltergeists.
Canon 3847
As everything in the universe is constructed from Unique Collective Awareness in motion as Life is a
Dream, mind as awareness has the potential to travel to any point at any moment. Therefore
Psychokinesis does not contravene any Divine Law or Natural Law. However, there are three natural
restrictions limiting Psychokinesis (1) Mind-Collective Mind Connection; (2) Mind-Matter Connection
and (3) Body-Brain-Mind Connection.
Canon 3848
The first and traditionally greatest obstacle to intentional Psychokinesis is ignorance of the Mind-
Collective Mind Connection, or connection to Unique Collective Awareness. Thus an ignorance that the
Universe is a Dream and the ignorance of knowledge contained in UCADIA means any conscious
Homo-Sapien mind is unskilled to navigate collective mind beyond stereotypes and limits of
ignorance.
Canon 3849
The second and related obstacle to intentional Psychokinesis is the natural focus of all mind and
matter to be relative, locational and unique. Therefore, the universe seeks to minimize the conscious
interconnection of mind, while promoting the conscious physical connection of mind through matter to
matter. Thus in an absence of knowledge of the Canons of Natural Law, a person is ignorant of the
natural personality and behaviour of mind and matter.
Canon 3850
The third and related obstacle to conscious Psychokinesis is the body-brain-mind connection in all
higher order life naturally designed to prevent the loss of mind, not permit it. Thus genuine
Psychokinesis can only be achieved in a knowledgeable state of meditative, calm, lucid dreaming
permitting the mind to leave the body and focus on field manipulation.
Canon 3851
Any claimed Psychokinesis without knowledge and skill as defined in accordance with these canons is
either a product of Clairvoyance or guessing or is a fraud and hoax.
III. Sacred
Canon 3852
Sacred Numeracy or “numerology” are terms used to describe various ancient traditions and
customs that believe numbers possess magical and supernatural powers in their relationship to
physical objects and other form.
Canon 3853
As everything within the universal dream may be expressed in terms of numbers and relationships of
numbers, numbers rightly represent symbols of meaning of sacred importance.
Canon 3854
As existence depends on the operation of Natural Laws, therefore not permitting supernatural laws,
all magic and power of numbers may be expressed in terms of Divine Law and Natural Law.
Canon 3855
While a particular Religion or Cult may place greater or lesser emphasis on a number, the paradox of
existence is that if one number ceased to exist, all numbers cease to exist. Therefore no number can
correctly be considered more important than another.
Art icle 60 - Sacred Geomet ry
Canon 3856
Sacred Geometry is the belief that certain geometric shapes, patterns and proportions are sacred
and therefore possess higher significance and importance, either through occult and religious
teaching or observation of natural patterns within Natural Law.
Canon 3857
While Religions and particularly Cults claim sacred Geometry is a reflection on the belief that the
universe is created according to a Divine geometric plan, there is frequently a deliberate and
conscious discord between natural geometry and man-made geometry.
Canon 3858
In the universal dream and therefore the dimension created by the Divine Creator, the most important
shapes are the circle, the sphere and the curve. However, in Religions and Cults, the most significant
shapes are straight lines, squares, triangles, combinations of all three and complex shapes such as
pentagrams.
Canon 3859
As there is no such thing as a straight line in reality in the universe, all straight line geometry created
by Religions and Cults is man-made and has no actual connection to Divine geometry of the universe.
Canon 3860
The disconnect between the actual geometric shapes of the universe and the geometric shapes
considered sacred by Religions and Cults since the beginning of Civilization is explained by
“Halluciogenic Entoptic Phenomena” being visual sensations derived from the natural structure of the
optic system from the eyeball to cortex when one or more powerful hallucinogenic substances have
been consumed.
Canon 3861
While the consumption of hallucinogens by ancient priests of Religions and Cults, especially the LSD
effects of “sacred” mushrooms altered consciousness, it also produced predictable visual distortions
of “Halluciogenic Entoptic Phenomena” implying the existence of a fractal-like substructure to nature
based upon lines, lattice structures, triangles, serpent waves and squares. Hence, this geometric
information has been presumed to be sacred to the geometry of the universe, rather than a
consistent and normal effect of being under the influence of powerful drugs.
Canon 3862
Sacred man-made geometry is most commonly used in the planning and construction of religious
structures such as churches, temples, mosques, religious monuments, altars, tabernacles; as well as
for sacred spaces and the creation of religious art.
Canon 3863
Given sacred man-made geometry rarely represents nature or sacred geometry of the universe, such
shapes promoted by Religions and especially by Cults as sacred often have no power other than in
promoting false belief which may then become self-fulfilling when enough ignorant minds, living and
deceased, believe it to be true.
Canon 3864
Rather than sympathetic geometry that enhances nature, straight-line and square sacred man-made
geometry interrupts natural field flow, severs natural current and disturbs sacred nature, particularly
when such alien structures are created at sights of significant natural energy.
Art icle 61 - Sacred Symbols
Canon 3865
Sacred Symbols are certain line art, geometric shapes, carvings and images considered sacred by
one or more Religions and Cults.
Canon 3866
The three oldest sacred symbols of all Religions and Cults of history representing priests and men
spiritually connected to universal and divine geometry are the Circle, the Arc and the Cross.
Canon 3867
The three oldest sacred symbols of all Religions and Cults of history representing priests and men
spiritually disconnected and at war with the universe and divine nature are the Square, the Straight-
Line and the Pentagram.
Canon 3868
Ancient Symbols such as the Circle, the Arc and Cross of the oldest priest lines of history such as the
Cuilliaéan, also known as the Holly, also known as the Da’vid, also known as the Druvid have always
been the most powerful in respecting and recognizing harmony and the harnessing of nature.
Canon 3869
Ancient Symbols such as the Square, the Straight-Line and Pentagram of the oldest theatrical
magicians of history from Ur, Ur-Gar-Rit, Am-Ur-Ru and Ur-Sar-Lim have always been believed to be
the most powerful negative symbols of natural disruption, destruction and attempted control of
nature.
Canon 3870
The primary differentiation of the sacredness associated with squares, straight-lines, triangles and
pentagrams of theatrical magicians is due to the historical addiction and worship of certain
hallucinogens, in particularly mushrooms and the LSD effect, producing not only euphoria and a sense
of “all-knowing” but psychosis, introversion and consistent “Halluciogenic Entoptic Phenomena” such
as straight-lines, lattice, squares, triangles and serpents.
Canon 3871
The obsession and addiction to certain hallucinogenic drugs, including the creation of sacred
headdress such as the mushroom hat of high priests in their worship, combined with a historic inability
to truly connect to the Divine over millennia, has produced a highly complex and ultimately delusional
system maintained by the descendents of the theatrical magicians of sacred symbols that bear no
resemblance to the life, the universe or the divine.
Canon 3872
As ancient misaligned and divinely dissociative symbols such as the Square, the Straight-Line and
Pentagram have no natural power whatsoever, any power is derived solely from fraud, false doctrine
and manipulation of belief that they possess great significance.
Canon 3873
When any Religion or Cult promotes alien symbols ahead of natural aligned symbols with the universe
and divine, then such a Religion and Cult promotes disconnect of its followers to nature, their bodies
and the world at large, rather than harmony and wholeness.
Art icle 62 - Sacred Places
Canon 3874
A Sacred Place is a physical location considered sacred or holy by one or more Religions or Cults on
account of some event of significance occurring on the site. All Religions and Cult have places they
regard as most sacred.
Canon 3875
There are three (3) primary types of sacred places: places of burial, places of miracle or place of
ancient power.
Canon 3876
Places of death and burial have always been considered sacred. The respect of the dead is a central
component to all major Religions, although the treatment of human remains is different.
Canon 3877
Places of miracle and divine revelation have always been considered sacred. The respect and
preservation of sites is a central component to most Religions and Cults. However, in the case of
some cults such as the Roman Cult, the sacrilege and deliberate vandalism of places not considered
central to Cult dogma has been historically promoted and continues to this day.
Canon 3878
The most significant places of miracle and divine revelation in history are those sites at which these
canons were revealed, including the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum and Ucadia.
Therefore, the most sacred places on Earth without question are those sites where such revelation
and knowledge came to Earth.
Canon 3879
Consistent with history, the Roman Cult and its agents have deliberately permitted the most sacred
sites in history represented by the birth of these canons and Ucadia to be vandalized and
desecrated. As a result and by such clear evidence of contempt for the Divine, the Roman Cult, also
known as the Vatican, also known as the Roman Catholic Church consents and agrees that it is unfit
to administer and protect any sacred place whatsoever.
Canon 3880
Places of ancient power have also always been considered sacred. The most powerful places of
history have been places of existing ancient temples as well as sites of natural energy flow of the
Earth.
Art icle 63 - Sacred Art
Canon 3881
Sacred art is defined as some kind of object depicting imagery considered sacred by one or more
Religions and Cult. The Sacred art itself may also be venerated as sacred.
Canon 3882
The oldest and most important Sacred Art are those abstract carvings, paintings and drawings
variously known as Rock Art by the ancestors of Homo Sapiens and related species such as
Neanderthals found in caves and rocky grottos throughout the world.
Canon 3883
The uniform characteristics of Rock Art, including the unmistakable and obvious reproduction of
imagery associated with Halluciogenic Entoptic Phenomena permits the logical conclusion that the
earliest Sacred Art was associated not only with the earliest religious ceremonies but the
consumption of hallucinogenic substances.
Canon 3884
Halluciogenic Entoptic Phenomena is the consistent distortions of the human optic system from the
eyeball to the cortex when one or more powerful hallucinogens have been consumed. These naturally
occurring and universally consistent distortions include lattice and expanding hexagonal patterns,
parallel lines, dots and short flecks, zig-zag lines and serpents, triangles and more complex
geometric shapes.
Canon 3885
The reproduction and interpretation of universally consistent distortions of Halluciogenic Entoptic
Phenomena is also a feature of the earliest Sacred Art of the earliest civilizations, especially
Sumarian, Akkadian, Egyptian and Asian civilizations, while Sacred Art evolved past the literal of these
phenomena in sacred Ireland and ancient Europe under the influence of the Cuilliaéan, also known as
the Holly, also known as the Da’vid and Druvid.
Canon 3886
Since the 11th Century until the 21st Century until the end of the Roman Cult, also known as the
Roman Catholic Church on March 14th 2013 and the return of the true Universal Church, Sacred Art
had become focused primarily on idolatry, whereby any idols created for worship for the ignorant
followers of the Cult were renamed “sacramentals”, while any idol artwork not approved by the Cult
was slandered as “idolatry”.
Art icle 64 - Sacred Text s
Canon 3887
A Sacred Text or scripture is some inscription or printed document, book, charter, manuscript or folio
containing accounts, descriptions, stories and testaments considered sacred by one or more
Religions and Cults.
Canon 3888
The most significant Sacred texts in history are those believed to be direct Divine revelation. All
Civilizations and therefore Religions and Cults possess or used to possess one or more Sacred
Texts.
Canon 3889
Until the 13th Century and the creation of the SS, also known as Sedes Sacrorum, also falsely named
the "Holy See" between the elite anti-semitic parasite Venetian Khazarian slave-master families and
the Lombardi pagan families, it was an unwritten rule between all civilizations that sacred scripture,
regardless of difference, was to be respected and conserved. However, since the 13th Century, the
Roman Cult has been systematic and ruthless in seeking out and destroying every possible Sacred
Text, keeping only selected texts, including the creation of complete forgeries.
Canon 3890
The Roman Cult and their elite anti-semitic parasite partners are responsible for the destruction of
more sacred scripture, the corruption and forgery of more ancient knowledge than any other criminal
organization in history.
Canon 3891
Because of the deliberate and sacrilegious work of the Roman Cult and their elite anti-semitic
parasite Venetian Khazarian/Scythian partners from Asia, most Sacred Texts in existence today have
been partly or wholly corrupted from their original meaning and translation.
Canon 3892
While the historic and deliberate acts of sacrilege and vandalism by the Roman Cult and their elite
anti-semitic parasite Khazarian / Scythian partners is unprecedented, it is possible to identify and
expose the footprints of their criminal acts in corrupting Sacred texts, when knowledge of their
corruption methods and approaches is known and the underlying truth is also known. Thus, it is
theoretically possible that most surviving and corrupted Sacred texts could be restored to their
original intent with careful restoration to remove the deliberate infection by the Roman Cult and its
agents over time.
Canon 3893
The most important sacred text in history is the most sacred Covenant of One Heaven also known as
Pactum De Singularis Caelum including these canons.
Art icle 65 - Sacred Rit es
Canon 3894
A Sacred Rite or Sacrament is a solemn ceremony and procedure considered sacred, in which one or
many events of significance are believed to occur according to the doctrines of one or more
Religions and Cults.
Canon 3895
Traditionally, most major Religions and some Cults have identified special ceremonies of significance
around major life events, including birth of a child, the transition from child to adult, the marriage or
union of a man and woman, the election or anointment of a leader or religious leader and the death of
loved one.
Canon 3896
Any claimed Sacred Rite that involves any kind of secret curse, spell or conveyance of rights in
contradiction of its public purpose is considered an abomination ritual and not permitted to be
practiced, taught, published or continued.
Canon 3897
Any claimed Sacred Rite involving the actual sacrifice or murder of any animal, or Homo Sapien is
both a crime and an injury against the whole of united Heaven, Hell and all spirits. Any person involved
in performing such a sacrifice fully consents and request a formal Binding in accordance with the
sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum and for their soul to be torn from their body by the
most fearsome of angels and demons and their body to return to dust.
Canon 3898
Any claimed Sacred Rite that simulates the ancient Egyptian Black magic Ritual of the Eucharist of
Osiris in the simulated cannibalism of flesh and blood is an abomination, anti-Christian, completely
satanic and not permitted to be practiced, taught, published or continued.
Canon 3899
As the Roman Cult has deliberately and perversely created a set of sacraments that instead of being
blessings are secret curses, spells and black magic rituals that glorify their distorted satanic views
whilst pretending to be divinely inspired, all rituals of the Roman Cult are hereby stripped of any and
all sacred and sacramental significance, with such rituals holding no spiritual force, credibility nor
authority whatsoever.
Art icle 66 - Sacred Office
Canon 3900
Sacred Office is defined as a particular office associated with a Religion or Cult considered sacred.
The concept of Minister is considered a term for defining Sacred Office.
Canon 3901
When a man or a woman is finally accepted by a Religion or Cult to a position of Minister, a formal
ritual is usually associated which involves the ordination or consecration of the candidates for office.
During this process, the dogma of the particular Religion or Cult recognizes a conveyance of power
and authority to the candidate and a believed change in their person.
Canon 3902
Some Religions and Cults believe that so powerful and sacred is a Sacred Office that once invested
or consecrated, the Office cannot be removed, except under extreme circumstance.
Art icle 67 - Sacred Myst eries
Canon 3903
Sacred Mystery is a term used to describe the belief by certain Religions and Cults that during
certain sacred rites and procedures supernatural phenomena occur, as well as an alternate
description of the sacred rite itself.
Canon 3904
The term Sacred Mysteries is similar to the terms Sacred Rite and Sacrament.
Canon 3905
Over history, the concept of Sacred Mysteries is most closely associated with Cults, such as the
Eleusinian Mysteries, the Chaldean Mysteries, the Cult of Isis, the Cult of Sol Invictus and the Roman
Cult until its ultimate end on March 14th 2013.
Canon 3906
Any claimed Sacred Mystery that involves any kind of secret curse, spell or conveyance of rights in
contradiction of its public purpose is considered an abomination ritual and not permitted to be
practiced, taught, published or continued.
Canon 3907
Any claimed Sacred Mystery involving the actual sacrifice or murder of any animal, or Homo Sapien is
both a crime and an injury against the whole of united Heaven, Hell and all spirits.
Canon 3908
Any claimed Sacred Mystery that simulates the ancient Egyptian Black magic Ritual of the Eucharist of
Osiris in the simulated cannibalism of flesh and blood is an abomination, anti-Christian, completely
satanic and not permitted to be practiced, taught, published or continued.
Canon 3909
As the Roman Cult has deliberately and perversely created a set of Sacred Mystery that instead of
being blessings are secret curses, spells and black magic rituals that glorify their distorted satanic
views whilst pretending to be divinely inspired, all rituals of the Roman Cult are hereby stripped of
any and all Sacred Mysteries and sacramental significance, with such rituals holding no spiritual force,
credibility nor authority whatsoever.
Art icle 68 - Sacred Archit ect ure
Canon 3910
Sacred architecture, also known as religious architecture, is a term describing the design and
construction of Temples, Sanctuaries, Altars and other structures by deliberately adopting certain
geometry, numbers, ratios and symbols considered important and sacred for a particular Religion or
Cult.
Canon 3911
The largest and most important structures of ancient civilizations until the age of the corporate
skyscraper were sacred structures such as Temples, Cathedrals and Basilicas. The largest, most
impressive and permanent monolithic buildings created in history still standing from ancient times are
religious structures constructed around Sacred Architecture.
Canon 3912
As Religious buildings have historically been the largest and most impressive structures of any city
for millennia, their location, ratios, even positioning in relation to ley lines, horizon and astronomical
effects of the sun and moon throughout the year have almost always played an integral part in its
design and architecture.
Canon 3913
Almost all great sacred temple structures of ancient civilizations represented within their architecture
a calendar device of the movement of the sun, the moon and the major constellations. One of the
most important architectural devices of a temple was the “V” measuring the movement of the sun
throughout the year and re-setting by aligning perfectly with set points in the temple complex. This
remains true with even modern great temple complexes such as the giant pagan temple complex
built atop Vatican hill in the 16th and 17th Centuries known as St. Peter’s Basilica and Square.
Canon 3914
Many great temple structures also represent within their architecture significant occult symbolism,
especially fundamental principles of fertility, death, renewal, balance and unity. This is especially true
with the greatest example of a pagan temple representing the sexual intercourse of the sun-god with
the mother-goddess Cybele of the earth on key days in the deliberate architecture of St. Peter’s
colonnades forming the shape of a female vagina and uterus and the shadow the obelisk in St.
Peter’s square expanding to many times its size at the setting of the Sun to “pierce” the front of St
Peter’s.
Art icle 69 - Sacred Music
Canon 3915
Sacred Music, or “Religious Music” is the composition and recital of certain music using tones or
frequencies, scales, instruments, texture, melody, rhythm and arrangements considered sacred by
various Religions or Cults.
Canon 3916
Tone is the base frequencies used in Sacred Music. Until the late 19th Century, almost all indigenous
music and a substantial proportion of Western music was historically tuned to the natural water and
Earth base frequency 432 Hz and its scalar harmonics. However, the 20th Century has seen an
orchestrated and deliberate corruption of base frequency music to the powerful dissonant,
discordant frequency of 440 Hz.
Canon 3917
While most Sacred Music until the 20th Century was designed to uplift and harmonize members of
Religions and Cults based on 432 Hz, the conscious and deliberate corruption of base frequency to
440 Hz means almost all music is spiritually divisive, genetically and cellular corrosive and bad for
health, no matter what form of music is played.
Canon 3918
In accordance with these canons, the tuning of instruments to 440 Hz instead of 432 Hz is forbidden,
including the playing of music at 440 Hz instead of 432 Hz. Any person, group or entity that promotes
440Hz music against 432 Hz must be disbanded, removed and cease to exist.
Canon 3919
A Musical Scale is a sequence of musical tones or frequencies that rise or lower in pitch, often
capable of being represented by unique musical notation and produced by different kinds of musical
instruments including voice. The difference between musical tones in a scale is usually called a step
and the difference between one harmonic tone to its higher or lower harmonic is usually called an
octave.
Canon 3920
The use of different Musical Scales by different Religions and Cults is a significant variation over
history. The oldest and most significant Religious scales were harmonic minor scales. However under
occult Cults, certain notes and scales became restricted and the introduction of pentatonic scales
and later diatonic scales.
Canon 3921
Musical Texture or harmony is the way different tones of a Musical Scale are arranged in melody and
harmony. The most common forms of texture are monophonic, polyphonic , homophonic and
heterophonic.
Canon 3922
In Western music influenced by the Roman Cult, homophony is considered the central influence
whereby a texture of two or more parts moving together in harmony, the relationship between them
creating chords. Homophonic texture is also homorhythmic, using very similar rhythm. In melody
dominated homophony, one voice, often the highest, plays a distinct melody and the accompanying
voices work together to articulate the underlying harmony.
Canon 3923
Homophony is distinct from polyphony in which parts move with rhythmic independence and
monophony in which all parts move in parallel rhythm and pitch.
Canon 3924
Heterophony is a texture characterized by the simultaneous variation of a single melodic line. Such
texture is still found in indigenous sacred music and Eastern music in which there is only one base
melody but realized with multiple voices, each of which usually plays the melody differently either in
rhythm or tempo with various embellishments and elaborations.
Art icle 70 - Sacred Language
Canon 3925
Sacred Language is a term used to describe a sacred liturgical language or divine language, written,
spoken and used by members of a Religion or Cult or by divine beings such as gods, deities and
other spirits. A divine language is always supremely sacred over any sacred liturgical language.
Canon 3926
A Sacred Liturgical Language is any language that is primarily reserved for official ceremony and
ritual by a Religion or Cult, that is not normally used in ordinary daily life. The language Latin that has
been hijacked and corrupted by the Roman Cult is an example of a Sacred Liturgical Language.
Canon 3927
A Sacred Divine Language is any language that is primarily reserved for official ceremony, ritual and
communication by Divine beings such as the Divine Creator, lesser deities, angels, demons and spirits
in general. The highest and supreme Sacred Divine Language of All is UCADIAN.
Canon 3928
In accordance with these canons and the sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, the original
of all official documents issued by Ucadia is in Ucadian first and then translated to lesser languages
second.
Canon 3929
When anyone references, writes or speaks of “Sacred Language”, “Divine Language”, or “Holy
Language” it shall mean Ucadia, the sacred Covenants and Charters and these canons and no other.
Canon 3930
As the Roman Cult has corrupted and abused the sacred liturgical language of Latin, the Cult no
longer has any historical, spiritual or legal authority to claim control, authority or influence over Latin.
Instead, the administration of Latin, including all documents in Latin is now administered by Ucadia
and its authorities.
Canon 3931
As the Roman Cult has corrupted and abused the sacred liturgical language of Latin, any curses,
spells or sorcery written by members of the Cult in Latin now expire upon the stripping of their
authority and control of the language, with all these spells, curses and the liability of false claims
falling due personally upon the flesh of each and every official of the Roman Cult and its agents that
refuses to acknowledge the supreme authority of these canons and Ucadia.
Art icle 71 - Sacred Dance
Canon 3932
Sacred Dance is a term describing the beliefs and customs of various Religions and Cults that certain
formal, synchronized and reproducible movement between two or more persons is sacred and
enhances spiritual connection. As Dance is normally accompanied by Music and other elements of
Sacred Form, it is usually part of a large sacred Ritual.
Canon 3933
As Sacred Dance in its broadest definition is formal, synchronized and reproducible movement.
Therefore, what constitutes Sacred Dance varies from the formal procession of clergy into a Temple
in unison, to marching, to group whirling and individual folk-type dancing and evocations.
Canon 3934
The most common feature of Sacred Dance is the continued expression of initiation and movement
within Eastern and indigenous dance, while the same ancient forms have been largely wiped out of
Western culture to be replaced by minimal, uniform disciplined movement restricting freedom of
expression.
Art icle 72 - Sacred Drugs
Canon 3935
A Sacred Drug or entheogen is any naturally occurring substance with psychoactive properties used
in a psychotherapeutic, religious, shamanic or spiritual context by a Religion or Cult. A psychoactive
substance is any drug that crosses the blood-brain barrier and acts primarily upon the central
nervous system, resulting in changes in perception, cognition, mood, consciousness and behaviour.
Canon 3936
Almost all Religions and Cults use and continue to use Sacred Drugs as an integral part of their
sacred rituals. The most significant psychoactive substances throughout history for Religions and
Cults, particularly sacred literature, have been hallucinogens.
Canon 3937
While there are many forms of natural entheogens, five of the oldest and most Sacred Drugs of the
founding of ancient civilization are the red berries of the European Holly Plant, considered the oldest
most sacred plant of Civilized history, Cannabis, also known as Hemp and Marijuana, the Opium
Poppy of the plains of Asia, Psilocybin Mushrooms and the venom of poisonous animals such as
Toads.
Canon 3938
Of the oldest and most Sacred Drugs of all civilized history the most important is without question
Cannabis, also known as Hemp and Marijuana on account of its robustness, medicinal qualities and
use as a primary source of superior fibre. Until its deliberate restriction and outlaw in the 20th
Century for purely strategic political and commercial reasons, marijuana had historically represented
the single most important crop of civilized agriculture next to grain.
Canon 3939
Prior to the deliberate outlaw and restriction of superior naturally grown psychoactive drugs by
certain Cults in preference of synthetic manufactured inferior copies, psychoactive drugs for medicine
and religious practice were largely free.
Canon 3940
Given the location, culture and natural availability of certain entheogens, Religions and Cults have
adopted certain favoritisms towards certain Sacred Drugs throughout history. The most historically
significant is the preference of the satanic Menes-heh and moloch worshipping priests of Ur, Syria and
Palestine to mushrooms, while the Scythian/Khazars preferred marijuana and opium.
Canon 3941
The significant worship of mushrooms by the Menesheh remains evident by the historic adoption of
sacred clothing symbolizing the importance of the mushroom, particularly in subsequent Religions and
Cults created by the descendents of the Menesheh in later centuries.
Canon 3942
A particular trait of mushroom consumption is the predictable visual distortions of “Halluciogenic
Entoptic Phenomena” implying the existence of a fractal-like substructure to nature based upon lines,
lattice structures, triangles, serpent waves and squares in contrast to the real shapes of the
universe. Hence, this geometric information is prevalent in Religions and Cults where their priests
were addicted to these kinds of hallucinogenic drugs particularly in the form of triangular shapes.
Canon 3943
Knowledge of the Sacred Drugs preferred by certain Religions and Cults permits certain prediction to
be made on the quality and nature of alleged sacred scripture written by their clergy throughout
history when addicted to those substances.
Canon 3944
While the psychotropic effects of “magic mushrooms” may imply a deeper consciousness, a frequent
by-product of such poisons is psychosis and sociopathic behaviour, particularly exceptionally dark
and disconnected writing that has absolutely no connection whatsoever to the Divine.
Canon 3945
While Marijuana, also known as Cannabis is the most sacred plant of all plants for the Scythians and
peoples of Southern Mongolia, their subsequent rise to power and deliberately outlaw use of
Cannabis extends to most of the world, excluding at the start of the 21st Century certain Arabian
nations and in particular a centre of cultural significance for them called Amsterdam.
Canon 3946
Since the 20th Century, governments throughout the world have largely deprived their populations of
cheap naturally grown pain killers in preference to supporting global commercial cartels of synthetic
pain killers, often with numerous side effects. This global imbalance has contributed to the deliberate
corruption and breakdown of societies as well as law and order across the world.
Canon 3947
Any statute that prevents naturally grown Sacred Drugs to be produced in preference to inferior
synthetic drugs produced by pharmaceutical companies is an offense against all civilization and all
cultures and is immediately null and void.
Canon 3948
Any leader of any Religion or Cult that seeks to maintain the lie of alleging naturally grown Sacred
Drugs are immoral in preference to synthetic and inferior varieties automatically consents, agrees
and concedes they are without any moral authority, spiritual authority and are a willing heretic
against the history of all faiths.
Art icle 73 - Sacred Food
Canon 3949
Sacred Food is the belief by Religions and Cults that certain food and beverages are sacred or
sacrilegious to various deities, gods and lesser beings and therefore require strict adherence to
certain customs and rituals.
Canon 3950
All Religions and Cults have rules concerning the consumption and forbiddance of consumption of
certain foods and beverages.The most notable for the number of rules and restrictions are Hinduism,
Judaism and Islam.
Canon 3951
Most Religions and Cults require the blessing of food and drink before its consumption using one or
more rituals.
Canon 3952
Just as all animals require the consumption of food and drink to live, most Religions and Cults from the
beginning of civilization unto the present day have believed that their deities, gods and lesser
worshipped spiritual beings required sustenance through the offering of certain sacred foods.
Canon 3953
In offering sacred food to various deities, gods and lesser spiritual beings, there have been
principally two methods: the preparation and offering of the sacred food by the priests to the god or
deities, or the preparation, offering and consumption of some or all of the sacred food by the priests
on behalf of the deities and gods.
Canon 3954
The most sacred food to gods and deities worshipped as having dark powers has always been the
flesh and blood of victims. In ancient Greek Cults, blood was worshipped as ambrosia and the food of
the gods. This remains the same practices of satanic and demonic worshipping Cults today in the
simulated or actually cannibalization of flesh and consumption of simulated or actual blood.
Canon 3955
In accordance with these canons, the sacrifice of any animal or Homo Sapien as part of any Religious
or Cult ritual is the gravest offence against united heaven and hell, including the Divine Creator, all
gods, deities, angels, demons and spirits. Such a person that participates in any actual sacrifice of
any animal or Homo Sapien therefore openly consents, requests and agrees to be formally bound in
accordance with the sacred covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum and for their soul to be torn from
their flesh.
Canon 3956
In accordance with these canons and the sacred covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum the
simulation of any sacrifice of flesh and blood is an offence against the Divine Creator and united
heaven and is forbidden.
Art icle 74 - Sacred Clot hes
Canon 3957
Sacred Clothes, or Sacred Garments are the vestments, ornaments and other garments considered
the sacred attire of official of a particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 3958
Sacred Clothes have always been a symbol and reflection of the claimed power and authority of a
particular Religion or Cult and the person wearing them. Therefore, in almost all religions the officials
and attendants of a temple were expected to wear certain sacred garments distinguishing rank and
themselves from the general public.
Canon 3959
It has always been considered a terrible crime against all civilization when a person falsely wears
Sacred Clothes for which they have no right, nor training. It is also traditionally considered an offence
to disrespect the sacred clothes of a Religion, even if one disagrees with that religion.
Canon 3960
One of the oldest and most significant sacred garments over 3,000 years old is the Cap of Cybele, a
thin, slightly rounded skullcap also commonly known as the Kippah, Yarmulke, Kufi and Zucchetti. Its
symbolism represents the “fish” basket in which Cybele, “Queen of Heaven” and mother of god has
captured and carries a soul. Whilst the original scripture of the Israelites, Yahudi, Muslims and even
Christians expressly forbid headdress as a supreme heresy, the Cap of Cybele is now ignorantly worn
by hundreds of millions unwittingly worshipping Cybele as Mary, Athena, Kaaba, Mari, Venus and even
lady Justice.
Canon 3961
The Red Cap of Attis, also known as the Phrygian Cap and Phoenician Cap is extremely ancient and
has been worn for over 3,000 years in worship of Attis, the lover and son of Cybele. It symbolizes the
severed and bloody genitals of Attis representing supreme sacrifice, unquestioning loyalty and duty
to Cybele and a fascist state. The Red Cap of Attis was deliberately misrepresented in the French
revolution as “liberty cap” and now is most frequently found as a key symbol of the United States
Senate and United States generally, including “Lady Justice”.
Canon 3962
The Sun Fish Headress known as the Mitre of Dagon is one of the oldest sacred clothes of high
priests for 4,000 years, representing Dagon the god of the sea, fertility and plenty and later as the
headdress of the Pontifex Maximus high priests of Saturnalia, also known as Satan of Rome during
the celebrations of Satan in December every year. The celebrations to Saturn, known as Satan, now
known under the anagram Santa continues each year as does the sacred headdress worn by the
pagan priests who continue to secretly or unknowingly worship darkness.
Canon 3963
The Black Robes of the Galla, the servants of Ereshkigal, Goddess of the Underworld from ancient Ur
and the infamous attendants of the dead or “grim reapers” from at least 1,000 BCE when the city
became the largest and most famous Necropolis of the ancient world, are some of the oldest sacred
robes and clothes of history. From 400 BCE, the Black Robes became the sacred dress of initiates
into the Occult Rite of Eleusis in the worship of Saturn, also known as Satan. In the founding of the Bar
Societies at the beginning of the 19th Century, the Black Robe was returned to use as the official
dress of a senior Bar Society initiate into the Occult Mysteries of Satan as a Grim Reaper and
attendant of the Dead, given the Bar Association had placed all living men and women into Cestui
Que Vie Trusts and Deceased Estates.
Canon 3964
When an official of Religion or Cult denies the history and significance of their Sacred Clothing, then
they automatically consent to being a heretic against their own faith, with no authority to wear such
clothing, having no legal, moral nor spiritual authority to wear such clothing.
Canon 3965
Any ritual or ceremony performed by an official of a Religion or Cult wearing sacred clothes for which
they deny their true history and significance, automatically means such rituals and ceremonies are
without any legal, spiritual or moral validity.
Art icle 75 - Sacred Orat ion
Canon 3966
Sacred Oration, is the vocalization of sacred text by members of a Religion or Cult during a Sacred
Ritual. Sacred Oration may include the vocalization of sacred liturgy, sacred prayer, blessing,
invocation or some authorized ritual.
Canon 3967
All Religions and Cults share the common view that the power of sacred texts and liturgy come when
members and officials vocalize them in the appropriate prescribed fashion intended. This is an
ancient understanding of the power of words shared by all civilizations from the beginning of time.
Canon 3968
It is an ancient belief that when words spoken carry certain sacred intent and form, the vibration of
these words carries across the Universe into the supernatural and spiritual realm. Therefore, all
Religions and Cults tightly control the oration of their most sacred rituals.
Canon 3969
The most powerful Sacred Oration of all is the oration of the Ucadian language, representing the one,
true and only Divine language. Thus when vocalized and spoken, Ucadian resonates both in this
temporal existence and through every level of existence and awareness.
3.2 Revelation
Canon 3970
Revelation is a term meaning the revealing, disclosure or testament from the Divine Creator by a
messenger of some form of communication with one or more supernatural entities such as a deity or
spiritual agent. Hence the traditional and common term for the messenger of such information is a
“prophet”.
Canon 3971
Unlike other forms of spiritual communication, Revelation is reserved for information claimed to be
sourced from the highest believed power such as the Divine Creator, or in whatever god or deity is
believed to be supreme.
Canon 3972
All Religions and Cults begin with one or more founders who claim to possess one or more
Revelations gained through voice, vision, dream or inspiration.
Canon 3973
Voice or Verbal Revelation is the belief that the Divine Creator may provide direct propositional
content to a prophet in the form of a voice, whether or not it is heard by others. Several Religions
and Cults claim that some of their most revered scripture was accomplished through Verbal
Revelation.
Canon 3974
Visionary Revelation is the belief that the Divine Creator may provide content and message to the
prophet when they are in a conscious and lucid waking state through miracles, manifestations and
other signs, whether or not the vision is seen by others.
Canon 3975
Dream Revelation is the belief that the Divine Creator may provide content and message to the
prophet when they are asleep in the form of vivid and extraordinary visionary dreams during which
the prophet may challenge or question the content and have it verified as proof of its authenticity.
Canon 3976
Inspiration is the belief that the Divine Creator may provide content and message to a prophet when
they are awake in the form of the crystallization of an idea or thought that acts as a catalyst for
action, design, speech or some other creative process.
Canon 3977
While all Religions and Cults are founded on the principle that Divine Revelation, almost no Religion or
Cult admits to the fact that almost all of their prophets were heavily affected by one or more
hallucinogens when receiving or transcribing their alleged Divine Revelations.
Canon 3978
While different psychoactive substances produce different effects, Psilocybin Mushrooms and
neurotoxins such as Toad venom in particular produce predictable visual distortions of “Halluciogenic
Entoptic Phenomena” implying the existence of a fractal-like substructure to nature based upon lines,
lattice structures, triangles, serpent waves and squares in contrast to the real shapes of the
universe. Furthermore, the use of such hallucinogens while creating the impression to the drug user of
divine awareness, actually produce in reality a form of psychosis and sociopathic distortion in
complete opposition to actual divine revelation.
Canon 3979
Writings claimed as Divine Revelation by one or more Religions and Cults transcribed under the
psychotic and sociopathic influence of Mushrooms and neurotoxins such as Toad venom can be
relatively easily identified by the historic location of origin of the sacred scripture, the psychotic
apocalyptic nature of such writings disconnected from the Divine and the historic evidence of worship
of mushrooms and other venoms through traditional sacred vestments, headdress and other obvious
signs.
Canon 3980
While all Religions and Cults are founded on the principle that Divine Revelation is not only possible
but can be demonstrated by their beliefs, the leadership of many Cults now teach their followers the
confusing and contradictory message that Divine Revelation either no longer exists, or is impossible.
Perversely, the same leadership of such Cults claim their authority cannot be questioned by anyone
other than the Divine through Revelation.
Canon 3981
The leadership of any Religion or Cult that denies the continued existence of Divine Revelation
automatically denies the legitimacy of all its own scripture and authority, consenting and agreeing
that such officials possess absolutely no legal, moral nor spiritual authority whatsoever.
Canon 3982
When anyone references, writes or speaks of “Divine Revelation”, “True Revelation”, or “Revelation”
it shall mean these canons and the sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Art icle 77 - Vision
Canon 3983
A Vision or Visionary Revelation is the belief that the Divine Creator by a messenger of some form of
communication with one or more supernatural entities may provide content and message to a
prophet when they are in a conscious and lucid waking state through miracles, manifestations and
other signs, whether or not the vision is seen by others.
Canon 3984
Vision is one of the four primary forms of Revelation received by prophets of a Religion or Cult.
Canon 3985
While a number of Religions and Cults no longer accept Divine Revelation exists or is possible,
several including the Roman Cult support Divine Revelation through lesser deities such as Mary,
representing Cybele also known as Mari, Astarte, Athena, Ishtar and Queen of Heaven.
Canon 3986
One of the most famous alleged visions of the 20th Century was the alleged appearance of Cybele in
the form of Mary at Fatima to warn three times the end of the Roman Cult if it did not repent and
change. These prophecies and visions were later deliberately corrupted so that the warning to the
hierarchy of the Roman Cult were all but ignored and forgotten by false and grossly distorted
imitation messages.
Canon 3987
As visions are rarely seen by other than by the subject experiencing the vision, visions are
unfortunately easily faked and suggested by ignorant followers of Cults. As a result, there has been
and continues to be a large number of hoax visions, especially in extremely poor and uneducated
countries still devoted to the Roman Cult.
Art icle 78 - Dream
Canon 3988
Dream Revelation is the belief that the Divine Creator by a messenger of some form of
communication with one or more supernatural entities may provide content and message to the
prophet when they are asleep in the form of vivid and extraordinary visionary dreams during which
the prophet may challenge or question the content and have it verified as proof of its authenticity.
Canon 3989
A Dream does not have to be predictive in terms of clairvoyance of future events to be Divine
Revelation. Instead, there are four specific criteria for a dream to be considered Divinely inspired: (1)
presence of one or more supernatural entities; (2) lucid validation; (3) vivid, detailed and
extraordinary surroundings and sensations; and (4) clear and unmistakable message.
Canon 3990
The first necessary criteria of a divinely inspired dream are the presence of one or more supernatural
entities such as people who in reality are deceased. A supernatural entity does not have to present
itself in human form, but may take some other form to enhance the visual significance of the dream.
Canon 3991
The second necessary criteria of a divinely inspired dream is a clear and unmistakable lucid
validation through the conscious questioning of the dreamer as to what they are seeing and
experiencing is real or a dream and the clear and unmistakable confirmation within the dream that it
is real. For example, clearly questioning a person present in your dream you know is dead that you
know they are dead and a confirmation from them that they say they are not because they are in
front of you is a clear example of lucid validation.
Canon 3992
The third necessary criteria of a divinely inspired dream are vivid, detailed and extraordinary
surroundings and sensations that have never been experienced by the dreamer before, or are
exceptional compared to any other dreams by its detail and setting.
Canon 3993
The fourth necessary criteria of a divinely inspired dream is the presence of a clear and unmistakable
message including the possibility of several deeper symbolic meanings within the same message and
the context of the dream.
Canon 3994
In accordance with these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, all
men and women have the capacity to receive divinely inspired Dream Revelations.
3.3 Holiness
Canon 3995
The word Holy is derived from the 15th century word hallow, itself from the 11th Century Saxon word
halig meaning to make holly, to make sacred; to consecrate, set apart a person or object as sacred;
to bless and venerate, respect as the highest to the Divine Creator. Hence, Holy from hallow is both
the ritual of making sacred and the claimed Divine authority and power for such ritual.
Canon 3996
The word Holy is closely related to the word Holly, from which it is ultimately derived.The difference
being Holy is the ritual of making an object or concept sacred, whereas Holly is already a sacred
person, concept or object. The difference was deliberately obscured in the 16th Century so that the
word Holy is incorrectly and mistakenly used to describe both ritual and quality itself.
Canon 3997
The word Holy, derived from hallow and from the Saxon halig is derived from an earlier Frankish word
khuli a shortened derivation of the ancient Gaelic cuilieann both meaning Holly. Today in Modern
Gaelic, Holly is still known as cuileann.
Canon 3998
The word cuileann is a variation on several words of the same origin including, cullen, culenan,
cuilleain, coilean, culleen, kollyns, collins, o'collins from one of the oldest titles of history Cuilliaéan
meaning cuil (forest) + lia (stone/physician) + éan /éin (bird/divine) or Divine Forest Teacher, or
Green God, or Da’vid, or Druvid, or Druid.
Canon 3999
The most common use of the term “holy” today is in the English name of the the Santa Sede, also the
Sedes Sacrorum, also known as the Holy See near Rome.
Canon 4000
As the true historical significance and proper meaning of Holy is a divine blood right assigned by the
Divine Creator to a member of the Cuilliaéan and no other, any Minister or Clergy not appointed by a
Cuilliaéan has no divine authority to make anything Holy, nor claim a thing to be Holy.
Canon 4001
As the Roman Cult, also falesly known as the Roman Catholic Church officially ended on March 14th
2013 and the one, true and apostolic Catholicus Ecclesia (Universal Church) was restored, the
Universal Church is granted, assigned and delegated the authority to use the word Holy and Holly in
such titles under the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4002
Unless duly authorized, any Collins, Minister, Mendicant, Preacher or Cleric, or any affiliated group that
repudiates these canons and refuses to stop claiming any authority to claim themselves or anything
else Holy is in serious breach of these canons and therefore fully agrees, requests and consents to a
formal binding under the sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Art icle 80 - Holly
Canon 4003
The word Holly is derived from the 11th century Saxon word hulis from ancient Celt khuli/cuili a
shortened derivation of the ancient Gaelic cuilieann meaning Holly, sacred, venerated and most
ancient bloodline of priests. Today in Modern Gaelic, Holly is still known as cuileann.
Canon 4004
While the 15th century creation of hallow from halig resulted in the word “holy” meaning to make a
thing sacred or venerated, a person borne to the most sacred and ancient bloodline of the Holly is by
definition holy by blood.
Canon 4005
The word cuileann is a variation on several words of the same origin including cullen, cuilleain, culeen,
coileain, cullenan, kollyns, collins and o’collins from one of the oldest titles of history Cuilliaéan
meaning cuil (corner/forest) + lia (stone/physician) + éan /éin (bird/spirit/divine) or Divine Corner
Stone, Divine Forest Teacher, or Green God, or Da’vid, or Druvid, or Druid.
Canon 4006
The Greek translated word “Keltoi” by the Greek historian Hecataeus in 517 BC of the people of
Rhenania (West/Southwest Germany) is a variation of khuli/cuili. Hence Keltoi or the “Celts” are the
Cuilli or Cuilliaéan or Holly/Holy People.
Canon 4007
The symbolic genealogical importance placed on the holly tree and its recognition as sacred by the
ancient druid religion is the original source of this belief that well over a thousand years later went
onto become a major symbol of the bloodline of Christmas and the bloodline of the historical fitgure
known as Jesus, also known as Yeshua.
Canon 4008
The Holly origins are linked to the Ebla pioneers of the great Bronze Age mining and trade of Ireland
and directly to King Ibbi, the last Great King of Ebla. King Ibbi, the Royal family and his court and
priests fled this great and ancient Syrian city before it was captured by Sargon the Great around
2290 BCE.
Canon 4009
King Ibbi and the Eblaites are the original source of the great legend of the Milesians, the "Syrians",
who established themselves as the first Kings of Ireland. The first name of Ireland was Ibbi-ri "Land of
Ibbi" later called Iberni, Hiberni and Eiru. Ireland's first city was Eblana "new Ebla", a site on or near
Dublin.
Canon 4010
The Holly Priest Kings are the original invaders, teachers and engineers known as the Hyksos
Pharaohs, or Shepherd Kings who built the great crescent arc channel from Zion, then known as Zeus
and now known as Suez on the Red Sea to Chi-Rho, also known as Cairo in the 16th Century BCE,
transforming the ancient world. It is to the Holly that the blood of the Hyksos through Akhenaten and
his family returned.
Canon 4011
The Holly Priest Kings are the savior messiah kings of the Brahmans and Vedic people known as the
Druvids, the authors of the great vedas and revered in ignorance as gods still to this day in the
celebration of Huli (Holly).
Canon 4012
The Holly Priest Kings are the savior messiah kings known as the Da’vids of the Israelites, the
followers of Akhenaten captured at Ugarit and bonded into slavery to serve the Ramesses usurpers.
It is to the Holly that the blood of the Da’vids through Tamar Tephi accompanied by Jeremiah
returned.
Canon 4013
The Holly Priest Kings are the Sangreal, the source of the inspiration of the Nazarenes and Gnosis
and the Holly Grail. It is to the Holly that the blood of the founder of the Nazarenes through Mary
accompanied by her grandfather returned.
Canon 4014
In the 4th Century, the Latin word for Holly - Ilex (from Latin i = one and lex = law) gained great
prominence as the first word in the official motto of the reconstituted Roman Empire under British
borne Emperor Constantine --I•N•R•I meaning ILEX•NOVUM•ROMANUM•IMPERIUM or Holly New
Roman Empire, simply the "Holy Roman Empire".
Canon 4015
It is the Holly, the Holy and the sacred history of the world that was usurped and cursed to be
forgotten by the elite anti-semitic Khazarian/Scythian Parasites and their agents the Roman Cult.
Thus the Holly became dust, with all that is now stated in law forgotten and removed from all records
and memory.
Canon 4016
As the true historical significance and proper meaning of Holy and Holly is a divine blood right
assigned by the Divine Creator to a member of the Cuilliaéan and no other, any Minister or Clergy not
appointed by a Cuilliaéan has no divine authority to make anything Holy, nor claim a thing to be Holly.
Canon 4017
As it is the elite anti-semitic Khazarian/Scythian Parasites and their agents the Roman Cult who have
disgraced all that is sacred, all that is Holly and Holy, elite anti-semitic Khazarian/Scythian Parasite
Rabbi, the Roman Catholic Church and its hierarchy are hereby stripped of any and all authority to
use the word Holy or claim to be Holy in any fashion whatsoever.
Canon 4018
Any Minister or Cleric of the elite anti-semitic Khazarian/Scythian Parasites, the Roman Cult, its
agents or any affiliated group that defies these canons and refuses to stop claiming any authority to
claim themselves or anything else Holy is in serious breach of these canons and therefore fully
agrees, requests and consents to a formal binding under the sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis
Caelum, to be hounded, denied rest or sleep by the united forces of the most powerful angels and
demons until their soul is torn from their flesh.
Art icle 81 - Prophet
Canon 4019
A Prophet is someone who is believed to have received Divine Revelation. A Religion or Cult then
considers one or more Prophets to be the intermediaries between the divine supernatural and the
temporal world with these messages known as prophecy and when written and combined as
scripture.
Canon 4020
All Religions and Cults have been formed by the alleged writings of one or more Prophets.
Canon 4021
A common feature of all prophets, no matter how significant the prophecies, is that during their
lifetime they were largely ignored, often disrespected and devoid of substantial financial means.
Hence the ancient maxim that one cannot be a prophet in their own land.
Canon 4022
All Civilizations from the beginning of history until the 4th Century CE recognized, possessed and
respected, the existence of multiple prophets and their prophecies. However, with the advent of
Imperial Christianity formed by Constantine in the 4th Century and then the Talmud of the Menesheh in
the same century, saw the claim that Divine Revelation had ceased. This was reinforced in the 7th
Century with the false Qu’ran of the Umayyad that replaced true Islamic scripture and then the
Roman Cult from the 14th Century onwards.
Canon 4023
In accordance with these canons and the sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, all men and
women are Divine Immortal Spirits expressed in Trust to living flesh. Therefore, while a man or woman
may have a particular gift or talent, all Homo Sapiens have the ability to communicate with the Divine.
Art icle 82 - Savior
Canon 4024
A Savior is a Hero, anointed by some higher supernatural power, who through his or her actions and
moral courage helps save a group of people by conquering some kind of danger. Hence, a Religious
Savior is a Hero who saves the world.
Canon 4025
As a Hero, a Savior must first fall from favor and respect within the community they ultimately save.
This might be by their own actions, the actions and belief of others, or both. Thus a Savior must first
become an outcast.
Canon 4026
In accordance with the most ancient beliefs of all Religions and Cults, the most significant sign and
tool provided by a Savior to help save people and conquer danger is divinely inspired knowledge
rather than force. In other words, the hallmark of a valid Savior is the knowledge and ideas they bring
that are powerful enough to withstand the physical obstinacy of evil.
Canon 4027
By definition a Savior is proven by the divine knowledge they bring, their actions and moral courage,
not by any claim. Therefore anyone who claims to be a Savior is automatically a fraud as such an
action contradicts the self evidence and behaviour of a true Savior.
Canon 4028
The method of anointment of a Savior by definition is a symbolic act such as kiss, an anointment of oil,
the bestowing of a sacred gift or amulet, or all of these symbolic gestures. Hence, Savoir in Latin
literally means “kiss”.
Canon 4029
The absence of failure nullifies a candidate as a hero and therefore a Savior. A person who has never
fallen from favor and respect within a community is called a “Star”. A Religious figure that is believed
never to have failed or behaved in a negative manner is by default some supernatural deity and can
never be regarded as a Savior. This is because it is physically, logically and morally impossible to live
as a Homo Sapien with others and not make mistakes more than once in life.
Canon 4030
In order to stop false Saviors, most Religions and some Cults hold certain prophecies as fundamental
to be fulfilled in the event of the arrival of a true Savior. For some Religions and Cults, this list of
criteria that a Savior must fulfil has now expanded to dozens and in some cases several hundred
prophecies.
Canon 4031
While the original intention of certain prophecy was to validate the authenticity of a Savior, several
Religions and Cults have extended the list with such a range of extraordinary criteria that it is
virtually impossible to consider how any one person might fulfil such a checklist. In turn, until such a
checklist is met, the administration of the Religion or Cult remain in control.
Canon 4032
There exists a wide variety of arguments concerning the fulfilment of prophecy and a Savior.
However, if scripture is to be believed and a Savior is to be believed, then the fulfilment of any
prophecy must be more than simply allegory it must exceed literal expectations.
Canon 4033
While some Religions and Cults believe that one or more Saviors have appeared, several other
Religions and Cults believe that a particular Savior is yet to arrive. The most significant of these
Religious Saviors yet to appear include the Maitreya, Mahdi, Messiah, Saoshyant and Soter.
Art icle 83 - Messiah
Canon 4034
The Messiah, also known as Mashiach, is a specific type of Religious Savior and Hero, borne of the
Da’vid line of Messiah Kings, also known as the House of the Yahud, also known as the House of the
Shepherd Kings, unmistakably anointed by the Divine Creator, fulfilling all valid prophecy, who will
save the people known collectively as the Israelites, bring Heaven to earth and usher in a new age of
divinely inspired knowledge, wisdom and harmony.
Canon 4035
In accordance with the sacred literature of the Yahud, the Menesheh, the Israelites, Imperial
Christianity and Catholicism before it was deliberately corrupted by the Scythian/Venetians and the
Roman Cult, the Messiah is a birthright of blood, not something that can be determined by popularity,
acclamation or some other legal device. Hence if a candidate is not borne of the blood of the Da’vid,
also known as the Yahud, also known as the David, also known as the Hyksos, also known as the
Holly, also known as the Druvid, then they cannot possibly be a true Messiah.
Canon 4036
In accordance with the sacred literature of the Imperial Christianity and Catholicism before it was
deliberately corrupted by the Scythian/Venetians and the Roman Cult, the bloodline of the historic
figure Jesus Christ was unquestionably valid. However, this was deliberately changed to wipe 6,000
years of history from ever existing by removing the connections of the oldest and most important
priest-king bloodlines from all texts and memory.
Canon 4037
All false, ignorant and deliberately heretical attempts by the Scythian/Venetians and the Roman Cult
to manufacture the claim of the arrival of a Messiah, whether metaphysical in the form of Lucifer in
1933-1944, or some false Rabbi without any blood connection to the Menesheh, Da’vid and Hyksos,
are null and void. Therefore, any claim that the theft of land in Palestine from 1922 is actually the
fulfilment of scripture and the end of the Old Covenant of the Talmud is false.
Canon 4038
As a valid Savior, the true Messiah must fulfil all nominated prophecy as condition of validation.
However, this excludes deliberately corrupted prophecy created by the the Scythian/Venetians and
the Roman Cult.
Canon 4039
As a valid Savior fulfilling the Talmud, the ancient scripture of the Yahud, without contradicting the
beliefs of Christians as well as resolving the paradox of the Israelites, such a person must
demonstrate some divinely inspired and supernatural knowledge and wisdom that resolves a
seemingly irresolvable set of contradictions.
Canon 4040
As all men and women are Divine Immortal Spirits expressed in Trust, in accordance with these
canons and consistent with the Sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, no man or woman
may be worshipped or revered as the Messiah even if they fulfil every contradiction, prophecy and
condition of validity.
Art icle 84 - Saint
Canon 4041
A Saint is a person believed by the followers of a Religion or Cult to have received upon their death
the full grace and rewards of the gods or deities of the particular faith because of leading an
exemplary life in accordance with some doctrine and dogma.
Canon 4042
All Religions and Cults possess at least one or more Saints, even if the term or an equivalent is not
used.
Canon 4043
By definition, the hierarchy of a Religion or Cult cannot logically or lawfully make a person a Saint.
Instead, it is supposed to be the god(s) or deities of a particular faith who through signs, most
notably miracles, indicate that a person is to be revered and venerated as a saint.
Canon 4044
While substantial differences exist between the selection of Saints by different Religions and Cults,
the following is considered the popular perceived characteristics of any Saint:
(ii) Possessor of unique and important revelations to the god(s) or deities of the faith; and
Canon 4045
The presumption that in order to be a Saint a person must have lived an exceptionally holy and pious
life is not considered a doctrine or point of dogma of most Religions and Cults. Instead, it is a popular
misconception which is rarely challenged.
Canon 4046
It is the presumption of a number of Cults that all persons in heaven are technically saints in
accordance with the doctrines of the Cult. Thus the promotion of Saints by these Cults is both the
promotion of certain role models to its followers and a doctrine of control by setting an exceptionally
unrealistic and extreme standard for entering heaven.
Canon 4047
In accordance with these canons and in accordance with the most sacred covenant Pactum de
Singularis Caelum, all men, women and higher order beings that have ever existed or will ever exist
are members of heaven, also known as One Heaven. Therefore the doctrine of any Religion or Cult
that seeks to control who may enter heaven is immediately null and void from the beginning.
3.4 Sacrilege and UnHoliness
Canon 4048
Sacrilege is the offence of stealing one or more physical objects consecrated and sacred to a god or
deity of a Religion or Cult. Hence, Sacrilege comes from the Latin sacrilegus meaning “stealer of
sacred things”.
Canon 4049
While the allegation of stealing is a universal offence in all civilizations, the concept of sacrilege adds
a further severity to any such allegation as such a theft includes the attempted theft against the will
of the gods or deities of a particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 4050
The concept of Sacrilege always meant the stealing of “sacred objects” until the 16th Century when
the additional false meanings of transgression of the virtue of a Religion or Cult and verbal
irreverence, or blasphemy were added by the Roman Cult.
Canon 4051
In the false meaning attributed to Sacrilege of transgression of virtue, the flawed and fraudulent
meaning presumes all Religions and Cults to be founded on virtue, which in itself is an absurdity.
Therefore this additional meaning cannot stand in any valid court of law.
Canon 4052
In the false meaning attributed to Sacrilege of verbal irreverence, or blasphemy, negative comments
against a Religion or Cult were never considered a religious crime except by the most sensitive and
paranoid Cults. Instead maledictions, being evil curses as well as impiety were considered far greater
crimes. Therefore this additional meaning cannot stand in any valid court of law.
Canon 4053
Any claim, supported by law of offences committed by a Religion or Cult, especially against Divine
Law, Natural Law and Positive Law can never be considered Sacrilege. Any judgment of any court that
defies such reason, logic and respect of law is itself guilty of an offence against the law, with any
such judgment, order or ruling automatically null and void from the beginning.
Canon 4054
It is forbidden for any court claiming the law, even if the by-laws of a Religion or Cult to order the
death penalty for any accused act of Sacrilege. Any court official that issues a death penalty against
an alleged act of Sacrilege is subject to a formal binding in accordance with the sacred covenant of
One Heaven.
Art icle 86 - Blasphemy
Canon 4055
Blasphemy is a fictional word created in the 14th Century by the Roman Cult meaning to speak ill of
(the Cult) or slander the (Cult). From two Greek words blax “stupid, lazy” and pheme “utterance”.
Canon 4056
In its original construction by the Roman Cult, the word Blaspheme was itself a literal slander against
the person making the utterance against the Cult. Originally, there was no attempt to pretend the
word had any religious or historical significance. However, as the power of the Cult increased, the
word also increased in importance.
Canon 4057
Ancient Religions and Cults of importance already had well established words to describe vocal
offences against a faith, rather than the petty constructed concept of insulting the insultor through
the word “blasphemy”. The two most significant words were malediction, or cursing and impiety in evil
behaviour by clergy.
Canon 4058
The false and deliberate connection of Blasphemy to Sacrilege did not occur until the 16th century. At
this point, the definitions of impiety and malediction were falsely added to strengthen the credibility
of the word.
Canon 4059
As the creation of the word Blasphemy is a deliberate curse and insult against the alleged
blasphemer and as the word was designed as specific defense and attack by the Roman Cult, the
word Blasphemy and any law that seeks to enforce Blasphemy are hereby null and void from the
beginning.
Art icle 87 - Impiet y
Canon 4060
Impiety is the dereliction of duty, disloyalty, deliberately sinful, wicked and unscrupulous behaviour of
Ministers and Clergy of a Religion or Cult.
Canon 4061
Of all offences against a Religion or Cult in the world until the 11th Century, Impiety was considered
the worst of all offences, worse than Sacrilege and Malediction. However, the advent of the Roman
Cult and then the elite anti-semitic Khazarian Parasites ensured the deliberate reduction of its
significance.
Canon 4062
Prior to the arrival of the Roman Cult in the 11th Century and the rise to power of the elite anti-
semitic Khazarian/Scythian Parasites, Impiety was considered one of the worst of all offences
because it meant the clergy and ministers of a religion were actively working against the interests of
its followers and through their actions represented the very worst and most dangerous of all
heretics.
Canon 4063
Impiety in the form of deliberately sinful and wicked behaviour, while pretending to be pious is one of
the worst forms of impiety in that such action forms a kind of curse against the good nature and
name of all followers of the Religion or Cult.
Canon 4064
The worst form of Impiety is when leaders of a Religion of Cult name themselves “Pious” only to be
proven guilty of dereliction of duty, disloyalty, deliberately sinful, wicked and unscrupulous behaviour.
Art icle 88 - Unholy
Canon 4065
Unholy is a fictional concept first created in the 13th Century whereby an object such as a manuscript
may possess supernatural powers in direct opposition to sacredness. Hence, an object possessing
power that is considered evil, impure or otherwise perverted.
Canon 4066
The idea of Unholy was first conceived by Pope Honorius III (1216-12227) in the promulgation of his
Great Grimoire of Black Magic pertaining to the summonsing of spirits, blood sacrifices, holocausts
and other criminal acts. The belief by the Popes of the Roman Cult was that if a book was created
through the most evil acts imaginable, that somehow this evil could be concentrated into the text
itself, and therefore utilized as a source of power.
Canon 4067
Since Pope Honorius, the Grimoires and other Black similar Magic books by the elite anti-semitic
Khazarian Parasites have been considered “Unholy” and therefore powerful books of magic.
Canon 4068
As the magic promoted by Pope Honorius and subsequence Popes of the Roman Cult in the
promotion of their black magic books, possess no proper grounding in ancient necromancy, nor
spells, nor curses, nor any skills of ancient sorcery, all grimoires are frauds and deluded imitations.
Therefore, the belief that such books have any power, let alone “unholy power” is an absurdity.
Art icle 89 - Spell
Canon 4069
A Spell is a form of words and ritual used for magical purposes to elicit a specific goal regarding one
or more persons or spirits. The primary pairs of Spells since ancient times are charm or jinx, bind or
break, protect or expose, heal or harm, summons or banish.
Canon 4070
A Charm Spell traditionally seeks to bring good luck and fortune to a person, while a Jinx Spell seeks
to bring bad luck to a person without physical harm.
Canon 4071
A Bind Spell is a form of Curse that seeks to compel a person to some action otherwise against their
will, while a Break Spell or Hex Spell seeks to “break” a Binding or Curse.
Canon 4072
A Protection Spell seeks to protect a person against Curse and Binding Spells as well as the
avoidance of conflict and injury, while an Exposure Curse seeks to remove any protection and leave
them vulnerable to curses and harm.
Canon 4073
A Heal Spell seeks to help a person improve their health, while a Harm Spell is a curse that seeks the
physical injury, possibly even death of a person.
Canon 4074
A Summons Spell seeks to summons a spirit, usually for the purpose of a necromancy ritual, while a
Banish Spell seeks to banish a spirit from sight.
Canon 4075
While many Spells may be invoked with the intention of some positive outcome, all Spells are
considered as a whole a negative action on account of the fraudulent nature of most words and
rituals, the generally high ignorance of the operator(s) invoking such Spells, the lack of respect to
spirits and the Divine and the lack of consent and right of free will of those attempted to be spelled.
Canon 4076
Contrary to the false presumptions claimed within magic texts, a Spell is not required to counteract a
Spell. This is because ignorance cannot trump ignorance. Instead knowledge, prayer, confession and
exposure are infinitely more powerful tools.
Canon 4077
The strength of Spells as with the strength of any kind of Magic is the same as any Cult, in promoting
general ignorance amongst the population to promote superstition and fear.
Canon 4078
No Spell can withstand the blinding light of Divine Truth. No Curse Spell can withstand the truth of
these canons, nor the Divinity of the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Art icle 90 - Curse
Canon 4079
A Curse is a form of spell, designed to evoke a negative binding power, or harm. All Curses have two
parts- the binding and the return. The binding is the spell evoked and the return is the response
received once the curse has matured.
Canon 4080
By the laws of the Divine, it is impossible to evoke a curse spell to bind without also evoking the
return once the spell or curse spell has matured.
Canon 4081
A maturing of a Curse may be brought about by the spell being completed as intended, or the spell
being challenged by divine protest. However, the concept of a spell being broken is misleading as
once invoked, a spell has energy and existence and cannot be "unmade", only redirected.
Canon 4082
When a Curse matures, it returns to its maker for reckoning. Thus if a spell is invoked to hurt and for
ill, the maturing shall see its maker receive such ill intent with interest.
Canon 4083
Only when such spells and spell curses utilize deference and placement to channel returns to a
holding state can the reckoning of curses and spells be temporarily suspended. However, the law of
the Divine cannot be tricked and all spells and curses must mature eventually.
Canon 4084
It is considered an injury to the Divine to curse and all members are forbidden to formally invoke
great curses upon other immortal beings and spirits.
Canon 4085
The spells and curses issued by the Roman Cult, the Sarmatians, their allies and minions are hereby
considered dishonorable and unlawful to the Divine Creator as such curses and spells have been
found to be invoked without fair notice, nor within the consistent laws of these entities, nor given fair
time for maturity by using such trickery as to perpetually defer the maturing of spells and curses, thus
seeking to avoid a day of reckoning.
Canon 4086
Whereupon a notice of Divine Protest and Dishonor such as an Ecclesiastical Deed Poll is issued, such
a sacred instrument shall automatically mature each and every curse issued by such wickedness and
trickery returning all to their makers, or heirs and successors for accounting.
Art icle 91 - Molest at ion
Canon 4087
Molestation is an Unholy sacred ritual of the Roman Cult from the 14th Century followed by many
Ministers and Officials whereby the “innocence” of prepubescent children is sacrificed to the worship
of Moloch, rather than their murder. Hence “to Molest” literally means to adhere to the doctrine (ista)
of Moloch (moll).
Canon 4088
Any text that denies the original religious connection of the word Molest and Molestation in
connection to a ritual sacrifice of the innocence of children to Moloch is a grave injury and deliberate
fabrication of the purpose, origin and meaning of the word.
Canon 4089
The doctrine of Child Molestation as an important Unholy ritual of Roman Cult clergy since the 14th
Century appears to have been dutifully followed and successful even to the present day and
promoted through the adoption of other unholy rituals and practices including the forcing of celibacy
on male and female clergy whilst living, working and in close proximity to children.
Canon 4090
Molestation is not the same as pedophilia, a non-religious word created in 1951 that perversely
means from Greek (paidos/pedo) "child" + philos "loving." Pedophilia has nothing to do with the
worship of Moloch.
Canon 4091
In the history of all civilizations since the beginning of time, the Roman Cult is the only Cult to
deliberately promote an unholy and deliberately satanic ritual amongst its clergy to systematically
and thoroughly molest children.
Canon 4092
In accordance with these canons and the sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum no member
of the clergy of the Roman Cult is permitted to teach, interact or supervise unattended any children
until the Roman Cult completely confesses its unholy and satanic practice to Moloch since the 14th
Century and agrees these systematic rituals of abuse will no longer be promoted.
Art icle 92 - Celibacy
Canon 4093
Celibacy is the deliberate instruction by officials of a Religion or Cult to deny lower ranks the
opportunity to develop and maintain normal heterosexual relationships with members of the opposite
sex.
Canon 4094
The word celibacy comes from two Latin words combined in the 13th century being celo “to hide,
conceal, keep secret” and liber “child,offspring and book”. Hence, the original meaning of celibacy as
applied to senior members of the Roman Cult was to keep their offspring secret, not to refrain from
sexual intercourse.
Canon 4095
The claim that celibacy is a practice mandated by the married apostles and followers of Jesus Christ
also known as Yeshua of the Nazarenes is a lie, deliberate fraud and attempted curse against
everything Divine. Instead, celibacy is a ritual and practice associated with the lowest of priests
called Galla and the worship of Cybele.
Canon 4096
The Galla as the lowest of priests associated with Cybele, the Queen of heaven and the Mother of
God, also known as Mary, also known as Mari were expected to cut off their genitals on the Day of
Blood, now known as Easter and thus become voluntary eunuchs. Hence celibacy has never applied
to the senior ranks of Cults that worship Cybele.
Canon 4097
The origin of the Celibate Eunich Galla is the city of Ur which around 1,000 BCE was converted into the
largest necropolis the world had seen. The standard clothing of the Galla beginning in Ur was Black
Robes, signifying them as attendants to Ereshkigal, Goddess of the Underworld. They were regarded
as the Grim reapers, with the power to steal/consume souls if not placated.
Canon 4098
Following Ur, the next headquarters for the celibate Galla was the great temple of Cybele atop
Vatican Hill, upon the largest Necropolis of Rome in 200 BCE. Hence the Pontifex Maximus, also known
as the Roman Pontiff, also known as the Pope has always been the high priest of the Galla since 200
BCE. However, the Roman Pontiff only claimed to become “Christian” in the form of the Roman Cult as
late as the 11th Century.
Canon 4099
The celibacy applied to the lowest ranks of the Roman Cult, like the Galla, has never applied to the
higher ranks of the Cult. Therefore, throughout the centuries Bishops and Cardinals have fathered
many hundreds of illegitimate children.
Art icle 93 - Blood Sacrifice
Canon 4100
Blood Sacrifice is the deliberate ritual murder of another Homo Sapien through some ceremony of a
Religion or Cult. The six primary motives for ritual religious murder are Atonement, Offering, Spell,
Divination, Initiation and or Power.
Canon 4101
Atonement is when the dogma of a Religion or Cult mandates some form of ongoing blood sacrifices
as service of obligation for some agreement, or wrong. The most infamous example of atonement
remains the Talmud covenant with Sabaoth, also known as Moloch, also known as Satan since the 4th
Century which was deliberately broken in the formation of the United Nations and Israel from WWII.
Canon 4102
Offering is when the dogma of a Religion or Cult mandates blood sacrifice as a pleasing "gift" to
some god(s) or deity in exchange for continued favor and good fortune. The ancient Greeks
considered the food of the gods to be ambrosia, which is blood.
Canon 4103
Spell is when texts of a Religion or Cult claim blood sacrifice and ritual murder as required for some
high spell, either on the spirit of the victim or some other group or object. Many cultures used to
practice ritual murder of innocent souls as part of “blessing” important structures such as murdering
young virgin girls and placing some of their bones in plaster or wood at the head of a ship to protect
it, or in the hollow of a foundation stone of a temple to guard it.
Canon 4104
Divination is when texts and training of priests of a Religion or Cult claim ritual murder brings Divine
Inspiration to the wicked priests performing the act, thus enabling them to connect to higher powers
of foresight and inspiration.
Canon 4105
Initiation is when the leadership of a Religion or Cult binds a new member to absolute loyalty, silence
and duty by forcing them to participate in the ritual murder of an innocent.
Canon 4106
Power is the effect of participating in a forbidden act such as ritual murder of children, particularly in
ancient instructions such as those of the Grimoires of the Roman Cult in using the skin of the slain
child as vellum or parchment or book covering of important documents.
Canon 4107
Apart from being a crime, all Blood sacrifices are an abomination and the worst offence and
disrespect against the Divine Creator, all gods, all deities, all angels, demons and spirits.
Canon 4108
Any person who participates in a blood sacrifice of another Homo Sapien, fully consents, agrees and
requests that their soul be torn from their body, that their flesh be returned to dust and that until the
day of their doom that no rest shall be granted to them, nor sleep nor peace.
Canon 4109
As all spirits, souls, gods and deities including all demons, angels and saints have pledged their
absolute loyalty to the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, no blood sacrifice shall
have any spiritual or supernatural effect in anyway other than summonsing the most powerful demons
to take immediate lawful possession of the bodies and bind the souls of those who participated in
such an abomination.
Canon 4110
Through the supreme ecclesiastical dishonor of those who claim to rule by blood upon the dishonor of
many hundreds of valid Ecclesiastical Deed Polls sealed in blood by Divine Right upon the Day of
Divine Illumination being UCA E8:Y3210:A35:S3:M12:D4 also known as [12 June 2011] all rights of former
Blood Covenants shall be conveyed in full unto this most sacred Covenant thereby ending such and
all Blood Covenants, all Blood Sacrifice, all Blood Atonement and all Blood Seals.
Art icle 94 - Holocaust
Canon 4111
Holocaust is the deliberate ritual murder of another Homo Sapien by fire through some ceremony of a
Religion or Cult. The term Holocaust is the oldest religious term for ritual sacrifice by fire and means a
completely (holos) burn (kaustos) sacrificial offering.
Canon 4112
Any claim that Holocaust only applies to animals such as kids, sheep and cattle is deliberately
misleading and an insult to the memory of all who have suffered such murder as a core doctrine of
Holocaust rituals by Religions and Cults is the literal treatment and view of Homo Sapien victims as
kids, sheep and cattle.
Canon 4113
The origin of ritual murder by deliberately burning people alive originates from the city of Urgarit in
the early 17th Century BCE and then later to other Phoenician and Amorite cities such as Carthage,
Tyre and Jerusalem. In all cases, such ritual was directed to the god Ba’al Moloch also known as Ba’al
Hammon, Sabaoth and Satan.
Canon 4114
The original purpose of a Holocaust was as a form of offering to Moloch. However, from the 4th
Century CE and the creation of the Talmud by the Menes-heh (Menesheh) , Holocaust became a most
sacred ritual of atonement. Thus, whenever an act or enhancement to the covenant with Satan, also
known as Sabaoth was enacted a great Holocaust was required.
Canon 4115
The word Holocaust is equivalent to the Latin word Immolate introduced by Roman Cult Pope Innocent
III in the 13th Century to specifically and more clearly mean a burnt offering to Moloch. However, in
1933 Pope Pius XII of the Roman Cult ordered the Cult to return to using the sacred word Holocaust
for the greatest unpunished crime against humanity in history in the coordinated mass murder of
millions by fire.
Canon 4116
As Moloch, also known as Sabaoth and Satan have pledged complete loyalty to the most sacred
covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, any deliberate act of Holocaust or Immolation is now an
abomination and the worst offence and disrespect against the Divine Creator, all gods, all deities, all
angels, demons and spirits.
Canon 4117
Any person who participates in a Holocaust, fully consents, agrees and requests that their soul be
torn from their body, that their flesh be returned to dust and that until the day of their doom that no
rest shall be granted to them, nor sleep nor peace.
Canon 4118
As all spirits, souls, gods and deities including all demons, angels and saints have pledged their
absolute loyalty to the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, no Holocaust shall have
any spiritual or supernatural effect in anyway other than summonsing the most powerful demons to
take immediate lawful possession of the bodies and bind the souls of those who participated in such
an abomination.
Art icle 95 - Cannibalism
Canon 4119
Sacred Cannibalism, is the practice, act and dogma of followers of a Religion or Cult eating the flesh
and blood of another Homo Sapien, or the ritualistic simulation of eating flesh and blood when the
dogma of a Religion or Cult considers it equivalent.
Canon 4120
While Cannibalism, also known as anthropophagi, may be argued a cultural legacy of some indigenous
tribes, or episodes associated with extreme survival and necessity, Sacred Cannibalism is a
deliberate religious act and therefore is considered an injury against all things Sacred, Holy and
Divine.
Canon 4121
The most infamous current practicing Cannibals of Sacred Cannibalism is the Roman Cult, also known
as the Vatican, also known as the Roman Catholic Church with its most senior clergy conducting
actual ritualistic cannibalism through the blood sacrifice of innocents, mostly children and babies,
while demanding all its followers become ritualistic cannibals by regularly participating in ritualistic
simulation in consumption of the Eucharist and wine as the body and blood of “Christ”.
Canon 4122
Any Cult that participates in Sacred Cannibalism willingly or unknowingly commits an act of grave
injury against the original teachings of the historic figure otherwise known as Jesus Christ, also known
as Yeshua being the leader of the Nazarenes and a proven antagonist against every form of blood
sacrifice whether animal, or Homo Sapien.
Canon 4123
The ritual of Sacred Cannibalism may fulfil several unholy purposes including: initiation and induction of
new members, renewal and rejuvenation of power, as a spell or curse.
Canon 4124
In the case of the Roman Cult, the constant ritual of Sacred Cannibalism occurring across the planet
is both a spell against every follower and a Solemn Unholy Curse directed against the spirit of Jesus
Christ, also known as Yeshua by desecrating his words, his memory, his body and blood in an act of
deliberate defiance as ordered by the doctrines of the Cult since the 14th Century.
Canon 4125
Contrary to honoring the legacy, word and teachings of Jesus Christ, also known as Yeshua, the House
of Da’vid and the ancient line of the prophets and priests, the doctrine of the Roman Cult is a
deliberate system of high curses willingly and ignorantly carried out every day by the followers of the
Cult with such rituals as Sacred Cannibalism manifestly contributing to suppressing Divinity, Divine
Intervention, Knowledge and healing in order to promote war, dissension, disease, hatred, murder,
slavery, wickedness and misery.
Canon 4126
As the ritual of the Eucharist and Sacred Cannibalism is an injury against everything sacred and
divine, such rituals and acts are forbidden, banned and not to be revived. Furthermore, all texts
promoting such Unholy rituals are to be banned, removed and forbidden to be promoted or
reproduced.
Art icle 96 - Necromancy
Canon 4127
Necromancy is the use of any occult or magic ritual involving incantations, charms, spells to attempt
to invoke one or more spirits to appear or interact for the purpose of divination or to obey some
instruction.
Canon 4128
Necromancy is equivalent to Conjuration with the exception that Necromancy typically is based upon
black magic rituals, most specifically those written in texts such as the Grimoires.
Canon 4129
As Necromancy principally rests on black magic, the most important ingredient for its alleged success
is belief by the conjuror and practitioners as well as the alleged spirits attempting to be contacted
that the occult knowledge and magic is authentic.
Canon 4130
Almost none of the spells, rituals and incantations contained within any Grimoire concerning
Necromancy has any ancient legitimacy. Instead, it is usually the fictional ramblings of drug addicts
and people with severe mental illness.
Canon 4131
While almost all texts written concerning Necromancy are theatrical and fraudulent magic, the
extreme theatrical nature of such fraud is more attractive than the mundane authenticity of real
ancient magic. Thus Necromancy can and does work simply because those who perform it, as well as
spirits believe it to be true.
Canon 4132
Other than the power of belief and its ability to manipulate and corrupt the minds of the living and the
deceased, there is no Divine Law, nor Natural Law that validates necromancy.
Canon 4133
As all spirits, entities, gods, deities, angels and demons has sworn a solemn and irrevocable vow of
allegiance to the sacred Covenant of One Heaven and no other, no Religion or Cult has any
ecclesiastical or spiritual power whatsoever. Therefore, no ceremony of Necromancy shall have any
legitimate effect.
Canon 4134
As no Religion or Cult has any ecclesiastical or spiritual power whatsoever to Conjure and control any
spirit, any deliberate attempted ritual of Necromancy is an insult against united Heaven and Hell and
all spirits.
Art icle 97 - Evil
Canon 4135
Evil is the generic name for one or more powerful demon spirits worshipped by several Cults as their
supreme gods. Hence, evil is the English name for the ancient demon name ubel, known as iblis in
Arabic, saturn or satan in Latin and azazel in Aramaic.
Canon 4136
In accordance with Divine Law, Natural Law and Positive Law, there is no universal or localized force
of Evil. Therefore, any claims that claims Evil exists as an opposing force to Good is a fraud and such
claims are rendered null and void from the beginning.
Canon 4137
In accordance with Divine Law, Natural Law and Positive Law, no criminal action against another Homo
Sapien, living being, property or object may be classed as Evil, as such a claim falsely presumes the
possible existence of Evil as a force. Instead, any person who seeks to commit a crime in the “name
of evil” is suffering from severe mental illness and delusion.
Canon 4138
Any leader or member of a Cult that participates in criminal acts under the assumption that such
rituals are evil, is suffering from several mental illness and delusion.
Canon 4139
As all demons as well as archangels, saints and spirits have pledged their absolute loyalty to the
sacred covenant Pactume De singularis Caelum, any crime committed in the name of a demon, or in
the name of “evil” is an abomination and grave insult to united Heaven and Hell and all spirits.
Canon 4140
Every criminal or immoral act committed in an attempt to restore honor or honor one or more demons
by an act in the name of “evil” is instead guilty of an act of grave dishonor and insult to united
Heaven and Hell and all spirits. Such a person therefore fully agrees, consents and requests to be
bound, to be hounded without rest or respite until their soul is torn from their body and their flesh
returns to dust.
IV. Faith
4.1 Cosmology
Canon 4141
Cosmology is a term describing any comprehensive model of the Universe, its origin and the position
of the Solar System, the Earth and the Homo Sapien species within it. The study of just the origin of
the Universe is now referred to as Cosmogony.
Canon 4142
A Cosmology of a Religion or Cult may still be culturally valid even if it does not precisely adhere to
the doctrines of Science, also known as the Theology of Scientism. This is because Science itself is a
religion predicated on several fanatical presumptions including that a Divine Creator cannot possibly
exist and that any evidence of supreme paradox is an error which can be eventually solved.
Canon 4143
All Religions and some Cults possess some kind of Cosmology at some level of completeness within
their doctrine and sacred texts. In many cases, the Cosmological model of creation represents the
foundation and oldest sacred texts of a particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 4144
A model of creation, the Universe, the Solar System, the Earth and the Homo Sapien species cannot
be classified as a Cosmology unless it meets the following essential and common characteristics
shared by all culturally valid Cosmologies of all Religions and Cults, namely:
(i) the model defines a starting point of existence before the existence of the Solar System, other
Stars and Planets; and
(ii) the model defines a process of Creation and by what alleged forces such events took place; and
(iii) the model defines the separation of matter into very large objects such as galaxies, or star
systems or then planets or their topography such as earth, sea and atmosphere; and
(iv) the model defines the creation and evolution of life on planet Earth, including the arrival of the
Homo Sapien species.
(v) the model defines a Universe that separates Homo Sapiens from other life, the planet from other
planets, space from planets and stars.
Canon 4145
The most comprehensive and accurate Cosmology is the canons of Natural Law in accordance with
these canons.
Canon 4146
When speaking or defining Cosmology it shall mean the Canons of Natural Law.
Art icle 99 - At heology
Canon 4147
Atheology is any Cosmology model based on the presumption that a single universal Supreme Being
cannot or does not exist. The religion of Scientism, also known as Science is based on Atheology.
Canon 4148
Unlike other types of Cosmology models, Atheology is founded on the absolute presumption of the
denial that a Supreme Being exists, or is necessary.
Canon 4149
Atheology is characterized as a fanatical model in that it is proven to selectively deny elements that
do not fit its cosmology model, while maintaining the false premise that it is the most accurate and
objective model.
Canon 4150
As the canons of Natural Law prove the existence of Unique Collective Awareness and therefore a
Supreme Divine Creator, Atheology is an inferior Cosmology.
Canon 4151
As the canons of Natural Law prove the existence of Unique Collective Awareness and therefore a
Supreme Divine Creator, all Theologies founded on Atheology are by definition inferior.
Art icle 100 - Monot heology
Canon 4152
Monotheology is any Cosmology model based on the presumption of a single universal Supreme
Being above all other supernatural beings, who is responsible for the creation of the Universe.
Canon 4153
Any theology such as the Roman Cult that is based on a Theology of Trinity is not a Theology based
on Monotheology but Pantheology.
Canon 4154
While Monotheology may initially appear to resemble a Cosmology closely resembling Natural Law as
defined by these canons, Monotheology most commonly presumes a Supreme being capable of direct
physical intervention, which contradicts the most fundamental natural laws of the Universe. Therefore
Monotheology is an inferior Cosmology.
Art icle 101 - Pant heology
Canon 4155
Pantheology is any Cosmology model based on the presumption of several god(s) or deities that
form the singular Universe.
Canon 4156
Duality and Trinity are examples of pantheologies whereby Duality presumes the single Universe may
be divided into two opposite, yet united forms. Trinity presumes that the single Universe may be
divided into three forms, or is ruled by three forms.
Canon 4157
The Roman Cult is a Theology based on Pantheology that deliberately tricks its followers into
worshipping a Trinity of lesser gods being Satan the Father, Lucifer the Son and Cybele the Holy
Spirit.
Canon 4158
As Pantheology defies Natural Law, it is an inferior Cosmology. Therefore, all Theologies based on
Pantheology are by definition inferior Theologies.
Art icle 102 - Ucology
Canon 4159
Ucology is any Cosmology model based on the presumption of the existence of Unique Collective
Awareness (UCA) and the validity of the canons of Natural Law in accordance with these canons.
Canon 4160
By definition as Ucology recognizes the proof of existence of Unique Collective Awaraness and is
consistent with Natural Law, Ucology is the most superior Cosmology of all types.
4.2 T heology
Canon 4161
Theology is a philosophical system defining the proof, arguments, existence, principles and
theoretical relations between a particular Cosmological Existence, the Divine, Divine Revelation,
Divine Law, Divine Rights, Powers and Authorities and associated Prophets. The term "Theology" is
derived from the Ancient Greek theologia (θεολογία) which is itself derived from theos (Θεός),
meaning "God," and -logia (-λογία) meaning “utterances, sayings, or oracles”.
Canon 4162
While a Theology may be brief, by definition a philosophical system is not a unique Theology unless it
possesses the following criteria:
(i) A direct association with one of the only three (3) valid types of Theological Cosmologies
namely: Monotheology, Pantheology or Ucology (cosmology of Ucadia); and
(ii) A central and foundational set of argument concerning Divine Existence, Divine Nature and
Divine Mind (or Purpose) in support of the Theological Cosmology as proof; and
(iii) An association with one or more bodies of texts considered the most sacred scripture as the
source of such Divine Revelations; and
(iv) An association with one or more bodies of canons of law based upon such fundamental
theological arguments and sacred text reference whereby certain norms, standards and maxims
of law are asserted; and
(v) A form of arguments, justifications and methods by which the sacred texts and theological
system is considered superior than others with similar or competing ideas; and
(vi) An association with one or more formal defined rituals or customs as one or more
sacraments; and
(vii) A form of arguments and justifications for these particular rituals or customs.
Canon 4163
The most superior Theology ever conceived being Trinitate Theologiae or the Three Theologies or
simply The Trinity constructed from twenty–two (22) arguments representing the 7 Proofs of Divine
Existence, the 7 Revelations of Divine Nature and the 7 Illuminations of Divine Mind and the Primary
Proof:
#1 Proof of General Exist ence - states that the mere existence of an idea is sufficient to
validate itself, regardless of whether it is considered true or false to other ideas. Only ideas that
cannot be named, nor described may be said to have no existence. Thus the Divine Creator may
be proven to have General Existence.
#2 Proof of Mat erial Exist ence - states that existence of the Universe depends upon both
rules and matter. Neither matter without rules or rules without matter can exist in Universal
reality. The only answer is that rules can exist on their own “in theory”. The only example of a
system whereby rules exist “in theory” and then rules and matter exist “in reality” is the relation
between a Dreamer and a Dream. Therefore, the Divine Creator may be said to be the Divine
Dreamer and the Dream and thus the Divine Creator is proven to have Material Existence.
#3 Proof of Absolut e Exist ence - states that the argument of existence itself depends on at
least an Observer and the Object observed to hold true. Therefore, for the Objective Universe to
exist, there must be a Universal Observer. This paradox is answered through the Divine Creator
as the absolute Dreamer and the Universe as the absolute Dream and thus the Divine Creator is
proven to have Absolute Existence.
#4 Proof of St andard Model - states that the existence of a Standard Model of Everything
whereby all universal laws, levels of matter, properties and values based on simple fundamental
laws repeated at each level of matter may be defined without contradiction to itself and all key
scientific measurement would be an unprecedented historic and scientific achievement of
immense global implications. Furthermore, if such a Standard Model were to base its first law on
the existence of the Divine Creator and that the whole Standard Model could not hold without
this law, then such a Standard Model itself would be overwhelming proof of the existence of the
Divine Creator unless a model of greater design, perfection and completeness was able to
refute such a fundamental assertion. As the seven (7) UCA patents and the UCADIA model prove
the existence of this Standard Model, the Divine Creator is conclusively and scientifically proven
to exist.
#5 Proof of Dimension - states that dimension is the canvas upon which all material
existence depends and that almost every conscious being experiences the creation of
dimension first hand through their mind whenever they think or dream. All dimension is non-
locational in that it has no material existence and dimension can only be created by conscious
observable thought. Therefore the existence of Dimension is proof of the existence of the
Universal Dream Dimension of the Divine Dreamer and thus proof of the existence of the Divine
Creator.
#6 Proof of Reason - states that by reason we may suppose all around us to be false and
even suppose to doubt our own existence, except one immutable fact – the thought itself, even
of doubt is itself proof of our existence. Hence, cognito ergo sum or “I think therefore I am”.
Thus, through reason, the very thought of the divine is itself therefore proof by reason of
existence of divine conceptually.
#7 Proof of Experience - states that regardless of the attempts by some to cast doubt,
exclamation and possible scorn on first hand experience, by virtue of the existence of our own
faculties of cognition and reasoning, our first hand experiences of dreams, visions and events
beyond the normal (supernatural) are legitimate and reasonable prima facie experiences and
proof as to the existence of the divine.
#1 - Revelat ion of Absolut e Not hingness- reveals that not only is the concept of “nothing”
the purest concept in existence, nothing in the universe is absolute and everything is a matter of
degree. Therefore the only “thing” greater than the universe is nothing and therefore the Divine
in its greatest form is pure, unlimited, undefined and yet also nothing. This revelation is also
consistent with the scientific observation that “awareness has no mass” and that only
“awareness in motion with purpose (energy) possesses mass”.
#2 - Revelat ion of Inf init e Finit eness –reveals that existence depends on at least an
observable object within dimension and that for one object to have unique position within
dimension, at least six more objects need to exist above it, beside it, below it, in front and
behind. Therefore, for all objects to have unique position within dimension, all objects need
referential existence to other objects. Hence, an infinitely expanding, but finite number of objects
are needed to ensure existence. Furthermore, if but one object or point ceased to exist,
dimension would collapse, the universe would collapse and existence would cease. Thus, the
universe is both unique in number and infinite in object.
#3- Revelat ion of Perf ect Imperf ect ion - reveals that existence of the universe depends
on an observable form through perceived change of position of points of awareness, forming the
smallest imperfect form that is perceived at each level of matter as relative to some “perfect”
base value of 1. Hence everything in the universe is perfectly imperfect and aspects of perfect
imperfection as exemplified by the value pi.
#4-Revelat ion of Unique Co-dependence - reveals that in order for existence of the
universe, objects and subjects need to be specialized, yet dependent upon one another such as
the observer and the observed, the dreamer and the dream, the man and the woman.
#5-Revelat ion of Concept ual Symbolism- reveals that the universe is conceptually
symbolic and geometric.
#6-Revelat ion of Const ant Change- reveals that change of position, or motion is essential
for the creation of form and therefore existence. Thus, the constancy of change is essential to all
forms of matter and thus the cycle of birth and death, of life and rebirth, of redemption and
resurrection.
#7-Revelat ion of Benevolent Amoralit y- reveals that once dimension is created as the
dream of the divine creator, the divine creator cannot interpose itself twice in the same position
without collapsing dimension and existence. Thus, the divine creator is benevolent to all creation
and life, but amoral to the constant change of existence, in permitting the laws of the universe to
function.
#1 Illuminat ion of Awareness –highlights that Divine Mind is Unique Collective Awareness
and levels of Unique Collective Awareness that in all knowing, all remembering and nothing is
lost, nothing is forgotten and nothing is without witness.
#2 Illuminat ion of Logic- highlights that the Divine Mind as Unique Collective Awareness is
perfectly logical, reasonable and sensible in its actions, without any existence of lesser emotions
of jealousy, hate, fear, retribution, anger or prejudicial judgment.
#3 Illuminat ion of Consent - highlights that the Divine Mind as Unique Collective Awareness
chooses by its own volition (free will) to exist and that this is a conscious and constant choice
each and every instant and that consent without duress and coercion is fundamental at all levels
of existence. Furthermore, when consent is deliberately ignored, breached or repudiated it
places that part of existence in opposition to the forces of existence, law, love and fulfillment.
#4 Illuminat ion of Love- highlights that the highest expression of existence of the divine
creator is the love of life and love of all existence. Thus the strongest emotion is love and the
Divine is the personification of love.
#5 Illuminat ion of Law- highlights that existence itself depends upon rules and therefore laws.
Thus the expression of Divine Mind is divine law and that the highest of all laws is the golden rule
that “no one is above the law” upon which all true law is based.
#6 Illuminat ion of Just ice- highlights that for law to be present within existence, it must be
applied in accordance with the rule of law (golden rule), consistent with the mind of the Divine
being with clean hands, in good faith and without prejudice.
#7 Illuminat ion of Redempt ion- highlights that the Divine Mind is infinitely loving and forgiving
and seeks to redeem higher order life and enable such life, communities, cultures and empires to
fulfil their potential.
Primary Proof
#1 Primary Proof - any law that contradicts these Proofs, Revelations or Illuminations laws
cannot be law.
4.3 Dogma
Canon 4165
A Dogma is an authoritative principle, belief, tenet or teaching considered to be true and not subject
to dispute, doubt or divergence. A Dogma is frequently associated with religion as a founding
principle, belief, tenet or teaching. The plural is dogmas or dogmata. Dogmata are found in most
Religions and Cults where they are considered core principles that must be upheld by all followers.
Within many Christian denominations, dogma is also referred to as "doctrine".
Canon 4166
The term Dogma comes from the ancient Latin dogma meaning “philosophical tenet” and from Ancient
Greek δόγμα (dogma) meaning “opinion, belief, tenet or principle”.
Canon 4167
As a Dogma is considered a core belief or doctrine of a particular Religion or Cult, the dispute of it
usually implies that the person can no longer be regarded as accepting the particular faith.
Art icle 105 - Ort hodoxy
Canon 4168
Orthodoxy is the 4th Century CE dogma of conforming to the established norm, accepted custom or
traditional faith of a Religion or Cult. Orthodoxy comes from the Greek word orthodoxos which means
literally “having the right, true or correct opinion”.
Canon 4169
Orthodoxy was created by Imperial Christianity at the same time in the 4th Century CE as the word
heterodoxy which means any opinion or doctrine at variance with an official and therefore “orthodox”
belief and standard.
Canon 4170
The strength of Orthodoxy as a dogmatic principle is that not only does the concept establishes the
claim by a particular Religion or Cult that their practices are superior, but that all other practices are
abnormal and do not follow accepted custom and tradition. As Custom is traditionally seen as a basis
for justifying a particular law, a practice is not orthodox is implied by such terminology as being
“unlawful”.
Canon 4171
Almost all major religions claim their rituals and customs as being Orthodox, even though there are
widely differing views.
Art icle 106 - Tradit ion
Canon 4172
Sacred Tradition, also known as “Holy Tradition” is a term and argument used by some Religions and
Cults to claim a range of Sacred Rituals, Texts and other items gain their sacredness from being
dutifully and accurately transmitted generation to generation from some starting point.
Canon 4173
As a key argument for supporting and enforcing doctrine of a particular Religion or Cult, Sacred
Tradition presumes the customs and rituals practiced today are the same rituals and customs
practiced from the alleged beginning of a Religion or Cult and have been faithfully handed down,
generation to generation. Thus to question a particular article of faith is to question the entire
“alleged” history of the faith as well as the founders of the faith.
Canon 4174
The concept of apostolic succession whereby it is claimed that the powers of the twelve apostles of
the religious figure known as Jesus Christ have been subsequently handed down generation to
generation to the present bishops of certain Christian Religions and Cults is an example of Sacred
Tradition.
Canon 4175
Sacred Tradition relies heavily on the production of alleged genuine artifacts, relics, and other forms
of “proof” of existence of sacred tradition without necessarily having to argue, dispute or prove
specific articles of dogma.
Art icle 107 - Assumpt ion
Canon 4176
Assumption is a dogma whereby it is claimed it is possible to defy the laws of physics, logic and
reason in the bodily translation of an individual person, either living or dead, from earth to heaven.
Canon 4177
The dogma of Assumption rests on a number of primitive, ignorant and false superstitious
presumptions, including:
(i) Heaven is a physical location separate from the planet that is connected by the sky; and
(ii) The body does not need to be protected from external forces or inside some vehicle during its
travel to “heaven”; and
(iii) The physical body in Earth is equivalent in some way to the “body” used in Heaven;
(iv) The laws that govern existence of the universe can be easily suspended by a supreme deity in
raising a body up into the atmosphere without any other external force.
Canon 4178
Despite the primitive, ignorant and false superstitious nature of the dogma of Assumption, the most
recent creation of dogma of an Assumption was as recent as 1950 when Roman Cult leader Pope
Pius XII declared it dogma that “By the authority of our Lord Jesus Christ, of the Blessed Apostles
Peter and Paul, and by our own authority, we pronounce, declare, and define it to be a divinely
revealed dogma: that the Immaculate Mother of God, the ever Virgin Mary, having completed the
course of her earthly life, was assumed body and soul into heavenly glory.”
Canon 4179
The most significant claimed site for the most famous of claimed Assumptions is the rock birthplace
of Mithra, also known as the Foundation Stone upon which the most holy temple to Mithra was
constructed and consecrated in 526 BCE in Jerusalem. Since then, several famous historic figures are
claimed to have experienced “Assumption” upon this site first made sacred by Mithraism including
Mithra, Akhenaten also known as Moses, Elijah, Enoch, Jesus Christ, Mary and Mohammad.
Canon 4180
As the dogma of Assumption promotes ignorance, while hiding the historical connection to certain
sites and earlier beliefs, the dogma is forbidden, considered false and not to be revived.
Art icle 108 - Salvat ion
Canon 4181
Salvation is the dogma and concept first introduced by the Roman Cult in the 16th Century that as all
people are born with “original sin” and therefore “lost”, God has granted the Roman Cult the
exclusive right to "salvage the souls" through the sacraments of Baptism and Penance. Hence
“Salvation” is the “lawful” receipt of goods and payment to the Roman Cult for the salvage and
recovery of lost property. In the case of Baptism, it is also known as the "Salvation of Treasure".
Canon 4182
The word Salvation is derived from a 16th Century created word from the Latin root being salvus
meaning "to make safe and secure possession without violating (the law)". Hence the "salvation of
the soul" is the claimed securing possession of property without violating Divine law.
Canon 4183
The word Treasure comes from four Latin roots and was created in the 16th Century by the Jesuits to
describe the ritual of "salvaging souls". It is derived from tre(s) meaning "three, trinity", as meaning
"bronze coin, usually ceremonial", su(b) meaning "at the foot of, under, beneath, close to or during"
and re meaning "property". Hence the literal meaning of Treasure is "three bronze (or silver
ceremonial) coins placed under/near the property". This is the literal ritual of salvaging souls as first
described in reference to the Egyptian Book of the Dead and the payment of the "ferryman" of souls
with three coins for safe passage.
Canon 4184
Salvation is deliberately and falsely compared to the concept of Redemption, whereby a person is
capable of reforming previous behaviour or character. Instead, Salvation depends upon the
promotion of the concept of Original Sin and is a commercial Claim of Right dressed up as a religious
dogma.
Canon 4185
The receipt of goods and payment received by the Roman Cult for “Salvaging Souls” under the
dogma of Salvation is the right to control the monetization of Sin, which is the essential concept
underpinning debt and almost all money systems of the world today.
Canon 4186
Under the creation of the Cestui Que Vie Trust of 1540, the Roman Cult has since franchised out the
Salvaging of Souls to several Protestant Churches through "Salvation" so that the biggest promoters
of salvage through "Salvation" are now evangelical and new churches apart from the traditional
Christian churches.
Canon 4187
The ritual of "salvaging of souls" is continued in many Roman controlled societies today with the
absurd and extremely dangerous practice of placing silver nitrate solution in the eyes of the baby
and a drop on the lips in honor of the three coins and the true meaning of "treasure" prior to the
paperwork of a new baby being processed to create a new "slave" bond.
Canon 4188
As the dogma of Salvation is deliberately false even to the followers of the Roman Cult, as well as
being founded upon fraudulent claims, it is forbidden, denounced and not permitted to be revived.
Art icle 109 - Grace
Canon 4189
Grace, or Divine Grace is a dogma first introduced by the Roman Cult in the 14th Century that assigns
Grace as an attribute of God bestowing undeserved and overflowing love and mercy to those willing
to be salvaged through Salvation of the Roman Cult. The word Grace also deliberately meant a
cheerful disposition to simplicity and poverty. Hence, the word comes from the Latin gracilis meaning
slight, meager and poor.
Canon 4190
In order to promote a system of deprivation of rights and slavery, the Roman Cult devised the
concept whereby Christian followers would be told that if they accepted their lot in life and the
authority of the church, then God would grant them an undeserved state of “peace, tranquility and
inner joy” called Grace that through Salvation (salvage) they will enter Heaven. Thus Grace has been
a powerful mind tool in promoting voluntary servitude, also known as slavery.
Canon 4191
As Grace is a concept first created by the Roman Cult in the 14th Century, all texts and claimed
historic works prior to this point are deliberately false.
Canon 4192
The success of the concept of Grace in voluntarily accepting that being poor and deprived is
“ordained by God” has seen it extended as a concept across almost all religions and political
systems interested in maintaining status quo and control.
Canon 4193
As there is no Divine Law that says the Divine Creator wishes a person to remain in servitude and
poverty, nor another to remain in lordship and control, the concept of Grace is false and forbidden to
be promoted, denounced and not permitted to be revived.
Art icle 110 - Sin
Canon 4194
A Sin is a fictional concept based on the Moral belief in transgression of Divine Law and Offence
against the Divine Creator.
Canon 4195
Sin is unique as a fictional concept within the fictional framework of Morality in that unlike general
Offences, the Offence of Sin is claimed to be inheritable such as the form called “Original Sin”.
Canon 4196
Original Sin is claimed to have been created in the 5th Century, but was formed as an essential
commercial element of the control of the Roman Cult from the 16th Century including its associated
oppositte concepts of Grace and Salvation. Original Sin is essential to justify the concept of the need
to "salvage" the souls of people through "Grace" to the Roman Cult.
Canon 4197
The concept of Original Sin as designed by the lawyers of the Roman Cult means that all people are
born bankrupt and in debt, therefore automatically without traditional Rights. It also means they are
"lawfully" slaves until this debt is settled. By granting the Roman Cult the right to salvage and then
monetize these debts in the form of money, individuals are them freed from debt, granted minimal
rights under the control of the Cult and the Roman Cult controls the energy of the world. Original Sin
is therefore one of the most important concepts for control of the world.
Canon 4198
As Morality is a form of fictional reference based purely on Positive Law, any claim that Sin is based
on either Divine Law or Natural Law is wholly false, without valid argument and therefore null and void
from the beginning.
Canon 4199
As Sin is proven to be false and wholly against provable Divine Law and Natural Law, any claimed law,
statute or philosophy that supports the fictional model of Sin is contrary to the prescript of Divine
Canon Law and therefore reprobate, suppressed and not permitted to be revived.
Art icle 111 - Penance
Canon 4200
Penance is a dogma first introduced by the Roman Cult in the 14th Century whereby a person willingly
and knowingly consents to punishment, sometimes even self punishment as repentance and
atonement for some sin after their willing confession that lawfully converts their sins into to a crime
and an unrecorded or recorded criminal conviction. Hence, Penance is derived from the ancient Latin
word poena meaning “punishment (for a crime)”.
Canon 4201
In Western Law, based upon Roman Cult Law, sin and crime are considered interchangeable and
equivalent terms.
Canon 4202
While the false dogma of original sin converts all people into debt slaves and criminals under the
control of the Roman Cult, the ancient principle of requiring an oath or vow as a valid contract may be
absent. Consequently, the Roman Cult in seeking to remain technically in honor with the ancient
principles of law devised the concept of Penance in the 14th Century, so that people confess their
crimes as sins and a legal contract exists for inflicting some form of punishment such as death,
torture or taking of property.
Canon 4203
The unholy “sacrament” of Penance devised by the Roman Cult and now promoted by several
Religions and other Cults involves three (3) parts: contritio, confessio and satisfactio:
(i) Contritio is considered willing repentance and remorse, free from fear or duress before a minister
called a "confessor" by a "confessant" either as or on behalf of the "penitent"; and
(ii) Confessio is a vocal confession by the confessant to the confessor of one or more sins, or crimes,
free from fear or duress; and
(iii) Satisfactio is the sentence issued by the confessor to the confessant who then must execute the
sentence willingly. Once the sentence is uttered, the sin is completely separated from the confessant
and “salvaged” by the confessor.
Canon 4204
Prior to the elimination of Common Law and its replacement with pure commercial slave law (Private
International Law), the courts in most Western nations operated as Penal Courts, also known as
Criminal Courts, also known as Courts of Penance:
(i) Contritio in a Roman Court is the pre-trial hearing or hearing at which the Indictment is read by the
Prosecutor acting as the "confessant"; and
(ii) Confessio in a Roman Court is the trial or judgment phase during which the Prosecutor seeks to
perfect the confession of the "penitent" with the assistance of agents who may convince the accused
to "turn" such as an attorney; and
(iii) Satisfactio is the sentence issued by the confessor (judge) to the confessant who now becomes
the penitent by consent andmust execute the sentence willingly.
Canon 4205
As Private International Law being pure commercial slave law has corrupted and abrogated the
sacrament of Penance before Roman Courts, most jurisdictions no longer consider willing consent as
a fundamental requirement to obtaining a fair conviction, nor the valid “salvaging” of sin as
monetized debt in the form of a bond. Therefore, many sentences and bonds issued since 1933 are
invalid.
Art icle 112 - Providence
Canon 4206
Providence, also Divine Providence is a dogma and concept first introduced by the Roman Cult in the
13th Century that assigns the character to God as steward, trustee, provider and caretaker of the
world as claimed as evidence through continued intervention in the lives of people, especially saints
and those who worship saints of the church.
Canon 4207
Divine Providence is separate and not to be confused with other concepts associated with the
existence of the Divine Creator, such as Divine Presence. Instead, Divine Providence establishes a
claim of rights of the Divine behaving as the owner, steward and trustee of the planet, therefore
enabling some or all of these rights to be “lawfully” conveyed to the Roman Cult.
Canon 4208
Divine Providence is also considered the rights of God as a Title. Therefore, under the false and
unholy Papal Bull Unam Sanctam, the false claim of the Roman Cult as Trustees or “Curia” of the
whole planet is based in part on the concept created by the Roman Cult of “Divine Providence”.
Canon 4209
The claim that the dogma of Divine Providence was created prior to the 13th Century is deliberately
false.
Art icle 113 - Damnat ion
Canon 4210
Damnation is a dogma and concept first created by the Menes-Heh Rabbi in the 4th Century in
creating the Talmud, the Hebrew Language and their Cult to worshipping Moloch, also known as
Sabaoth whereby the world is cursed and condemned to serve Sabaoth, the Rabbi and their
followers as living Gods. Hence, in accordance with the Talmud and the Satanic Cult that formed it, all
men and women who are not blood connected to the Menes-Heh are considered animals without
souls.
Canon 4211
The Cult of Menes-heh is completely separate and has no connection to the Israelites, nor Mithraism,
nor the Zadokites. Instead, the Cult was a reaction to the formation of Imperial Christianity by
Emperor Constantine at the same time and an attempt to re-establish the ancient practices of the
Ram worshipping Menes, also known as the Mendes dating from ancient times to the river delta of
the Nile.
Canon 4212
Damnation as a dogma was perfected under the Roman Cult in the 13th Century with the introduction
of the concept of Original Sin whereby all men and women are born condemned to Hell and only
through Salvation (Salvage) by the Roman Cult may they be “saved”.
Canon 4213
In league with the Menes-heh and elite anti-semitic Scythian/Khazarian pretenders, the Roman Cult
has continued to emphasize the fear and horror of Damnation, in particular eternal suffering, burning
in fire, desolation and misery. The most effective demonstration of the cost of not following the
Roman Cult and its partners has been the deliberate unprecedented wars, genocides, slavery,
destruction and deliberate poverty inflicted upon the world for more than 800 years.
Canon 4214
As the dogma of Damnation is based wholly and solely on power and fear, it is considered reprobate,
suppressed and not permitted to be revived.
Art icle 114 - Deposit
Canon 4215
Deposit, or Deposit of Faith is a dogma first introduced by the Roman Cult in the 14th Century that
God conveyed certain property rights in trust to St. Peter and the Apsotles and that the Cult is the
duly appointed trustees of this trust. Hence the word deposit from the Latin depositum meaning “to
entrust to the care of”.
Canon 4216
The dogma of the Deposit of Faith is intimately connected to the concept of Sacred Tradition and two
separate dogmata being the claimed role and authority of leader of the Nazarenes known as Esus,
also known as Yeshua and Jesus the Christ and the dogma of Apostolic Succession. The dogma of
Deposit of Faith is essential to the central claim of the source of property “deposited” in lawful
conveyance of Unam Sanctum in 1302 as the first Express Trust for the planet.
Canon 4217
The dogma and concept of Deposit of Faith is essentially to justify the claims of Unam Sanctum being
both possible and lawful as the 1st Express Trust for the whole planet. If either the claimed rights of
Jesus the Christ are disputed, or the concept of Apostolic Succession are disputed then the Trust is
unlawful and no valid conveyance could have taken place.
Canon 4218
As the Roman Cult have never been the legitimate successors of the founders of the Catholic Church,
much less Imperial Christianity, nor the Nazarenes, any claim of Deposit of Faith and therefore any
subsequent trusts and legal instruments are null and void from the beginning.
Art icle 115 - Blood Right
Canon 4219
Blood Right is the dogma and concept that a person may hold higher rights than others by virtue of
their birth into a particular Clann, House or Tribal leadership. Divine Right of Rule, Holly Blood,
Sangreal, Holy Grail, Inheritance and “Chosen People” are all examples of claimed Blood Right.
Canon 4220
The evolution of Blood Rights since the beginning of the founding of Civilization and Religions over
10,000 years ago has been one Clann of priest kings considered living “gods” for seven and half
thousand years above all others on the planet, to many kings and queens claiming blood right to rule
their kingdoms and empires from six thousand years ago, to the emerging of ruling classes in which
many families rule over the planet from two thousand years ago, to the elimination of many ruling
class families to only a few who still hold such claims from ninety years ago. The next evolutionary
step is the elimination of Blood Rights altogether.
Canon 4221
The Cuilliaéan were the first hunter gatherers to establish boat skills, trade, metallurgy, religion and
the exchange of skills firstly for their own survival 10,000 years ago and then in interacting with
cultures throughout Europe and the Mediterranean as far as Palestine, Syria and Mesopotamia. The
first use of gold as sacred was Ireland and was traditionally the symbol of the power of the gods
being the Cuilliaéan.
Canon 4222
Unlike civilizations that leaderships that sought land, resources and power, the Cuilliaéan focused
specifically on a long term strategy of acquiring and folding blood lines into their own, most
significantly those bloodlines that claimed divine revelation to maintain their divine claim to power.
This was done in two ways, by conquest and the pledge to return the bloodline and by the provision
of advisers known as Vizers or Viziers to the major empires of the ancient world, who then sought to
bring bloodlines back to Ireland and the Cuilliaéan.
Canon 4223
The Cuilliaéan ruthlessly controlled power through knowledge and blood lines for thousands of years
including folding the most powerful and ancient priest bloodlines into their own including but not
limited to:
(i) the last Priest Kings of Ebla, through King Ibbi around 2290 BCE; and
(ii) the last Priest King Pharoah of the Hyksos through Tuthmoses from around 1350 BCE; and
(iii) the last Priestess and Princess of the Messiah Kings of the Yahudi through Tamar Tephi, only
surviving child of King Zedekiah of Jerusalem around 592 BCE; and
(iv) the eldest daughter of the Holly Irish prince and founder of the Nazarenes and Herodian Princess
Mariamne the Magdala around 45 CE.
Canon 4224
The failure of the Celt Empire and the rise of the Roman Empire spelt the beginning of the end of the
Cuilliaéan. By the sixth Century, the Holly had lost control of Ireland forever. By the 13th Century, the
Holly lost control over their own name and history. By the 19th Century, the Holly were completely
removed from history, except for their symbols of power, which are still used today, in parliaments,
temples and courts across the world.
Canon 4225
While the ancestors of the Menes, also known as the Mendes were vassals of the Hyksos for over
400 years in the 4th Century, Baba Rabban of the Menes-heh claimed through the Talmud a sacred
covenant with the demon Sabaoth, also known as Moloch as the Chosen People by blood right as
rulers over the planet.
Canon 4226
While the leaders of the Scythian and Mongolian bloodlines were never related to the Menes-heh,
through subsequent murder, genocide and deception, have risen to claim the covenant of the Menes-
heh and now falsely claim themselves the Chosen People of the Talmud as rules by blood right over
the planet.
Art icle 116 - Bapt ism
Canon 4227
Baptism is a dogma and ceremony of initiation, purification or rebirth associated with a number of
Religions and Cults.
Canon 4228
The word Baptism was created in the 16th Century by the Jesuits upon the direction of their masters
of the Venetian Fransican order as baptismo and is intimately connection to the "Salvation of the
Soul" or simply the "Salvage of Treasure". The word is constructed from four Latin words ba meaning
"soul", apto meaning "to fit, put on, adapt, to prepare or equip", is meaning "for this reason" and mo
as the common abbreviation of Ba'al Moloch also known as Satan. Hence the literal original meaning
of baptism is "for the purpose of fitting/placing or equiping with the soul of Satan".
Canon 4229
The first example of Baptism as a sacred ritual of a Cult was in the worship of Osiris and the
extension of the Osiris Mysteries by the Hyksos in taking control of Egypt following the massive
climactic disasters across the Mediterranean, Anatolia, Asia and Africa upon the explosion of Thera in
1628 BCE. Within the great temple complex of pyramids on the plain of Giza, the initiate for Baptism
would enact “death” by lying in what is known as the Queens Chamber, while a child was sacrificed in
a sarcophagus in what is known as the Kings Chamber and the blood would drip down through a
series of channels onto the initiate for their rebirth.
Canon 4230
The first example of Baptism as a ritual of purification and protection was by Pharaoh Ramesses II
(1279-1213 BCE) following ten great plagues across Egypt whereby the Pharaoh and his family bathed
in the blood of sacrificed first borne children of the former court of the Hyksos Pharaoh Akhenaten,
known then as the Israelites or “unclean” in the belief that their blood carried purification and
protection against the plague. In fact, almost all the Israelites captured at Urgarit and returned to
Egypt carried the CCR5 defect protecting them from the bubonic plague, influenza and smallpox.
Canon 4231
The first example of Baptism as a Sacrament is in the creation of the Cult of Mithraism in Babylon by
exiled High Priests soon after the city was conquered by Cyrus the Great of Persia around 535 BCE
Canon 4232
For the sacred Orthodox Ordinary Mithraic Sacrament of Baptism an initiate put on a white gown, a
thorny crown and walked in a procession to the temple, where they were stripped, placed in a pit
above which animals such as young calf and lambs were slaughtered on perforated platform over
them with the blood flowing through onto them, thus being “born again” with their “sins washed away
by the blood of the lamb”.
Canon 4233
For the Superior Secret Mithraic ritual of Baptism, the initiate was usually placed in a stone
sarcophagus and instead of a lamb, a human child was ritually slaughtered on an altar above them, in
a mirror tradition of the trials under the Ramesses, the Osiris Mysteries of Giza and ultimate
redemption.
Canon 4234
After the destruction of the most holy Temple of Mithra in 70 CE, an Apocalyptic version of Mithraism
was formed at Yavneh, whereby a number of fundamental reforms were constituted, including
replacing the Orthodox Ordinary Mithraic Sacrament of Baptism in Blood to the Zadokite ritual of
using water, or being immersed in water for purification. There is no evidence that the Superior Secret
Mithraic ritual of Baptism was ceased or reformed.
Canon 4235
In 1537, the Roman Cult, also known as the Roman Catholic Church and not the true Universal
"Catholic" Church instituted a corruption of the Baptismal ceremony so that the sacrament and ritual
represent the conveyance of the soul of the child as property to the church in trust as a “Deposit of
Faith”. Since 1933, this third Cestui Que Vie Trust is used to justify that persons who have been
baptized no longer “own” their own soul and therefore may be legally classed as things under
maritime law.
Canon 4236
As Baptism has been thoroughly perverted and corrupted by the Roman Cult, the false and negetive
dogma of Baptism attributed by the Roman Cult are repudiated and replaced with the superior
Sacrament of Divinus.
Canon 4237
As the corrupted and deficient ceremony of Baptism has been repudiated and replaced with a
superior and unblemished Sacrament, the ritual of Baptism is no longer recognized as carrying any
spiritual or legal significance and is not permitted to be celebrated.
Art icle 117 - Marriage
Canon 4238
Marriage is a dogma and legal concept formed in the 16th Century of forming a temporary
testamentary trust or Cestui Que Vie Trust whereby a man and a woman enjoin and convey their
rights as one to the Roman Cult or franchise subsidiary as Trustee with the husband, wife and any
future children as beneficiaries until death, divorce or dissolution of the trust.
Canon 4239
Marriage is not the same as the ancient union of weddian, also known as wedlock and matrimony
from the ancient Latin matrimonium meaning wedlock. Instead Marriage is created from two Latin
words mari meaning Sea or Holy See and ago meaning managed, administered. Hence marriage
literally means “managed by the Holy See”.
Canon 4240
The origin of Marriage dates back to the original and first marriage in 1250 between the poor
Lombard and rich Venetians to create the Holy See through a ceremony on a bucentaur off St Mark’s
Square between the doge and Pope Innocent IV whereby the Papal Ring was thrown into the Sea and
the words "Desponsamus te, mare, in signum veri perpetuique domini" (We wed thee, sea, in the sign
of the true and everlasting Lord") declared Venice and the (Holy) sea to be indissolubly one. Thus
every Marriage is also symbolically a vow of allegiance to the Holy See.
Canon 4241
As the ceremony of Marriage has been deliberately corrupted, the term Marriage is reprobate,
suppressed and not permitted to be revived.
Art icle 118 - Apost olic Succession
Canon 4242
Apostolicity is the fictional doctrine of Apostolic Succession whereby Christian bishops of certain
denominations, most notably the Roman Catholic Church, claim the historic fiction that an
uninterrupted and unbroken chain of authority exists from the Apostles then nearly two thousand
years to present day bishops. Thus, Apostolic Succession is the claim that present day bishops, most
notably those belonging to the Roman Cult are the literal successors of the Apostles.
Canon 4243
Apostolic Succession is a fundamental doctrine for the Roman Cult, also known as the Vatican, also
falsely known as the Holy See. If proven conclusively to be false, all claimed laws, trusts and edicts
issued by the Pontiffs of the Roman Cult must therefore be declared null and void. Furthermore, any
forms of law of any nation that depends on the legitimacy of Roman Cult Canon Law would also be
null and void upon the proving of Apostolic Succession as false.
Canon 4244
There are six irrefutable facts that prove without question that the dogma of Apostolic Succession
claimed by the Roman Cult is false and a deliberate elaborate fraud namely: The real founders of
Catholic Church, Foundation of Imperial Christianity, Foundation and Heresy against the Nazarenes,
Five Patriarchs and Byzantine Italy, Destruction of Rome and the 559 Absent Years.
Canon 4245
The first irrefutable fact is that the Roman Cult did not found the Catholic Church, but usurped the
legitimate Saxon and French Popes. Therefore, it is impossible the Roman Cult can lawfully possess
Apostolic Succession. Instead the Catholic Church was first founded in 742 by the brothers Pepin the
Short, Carloman and Winfred being the sons of Charles Martel at the 1st Ecumenical Council at St.
Denis in Paris. The Roman Cult was first formed by Gregory VII who converted to nominal Christianity
in 1057.
Canon 4246
The second irrefutable fact is that the Roman Cult did not found the Christian Church, but usurped not
only the legitimate Saxon and French Popes, but the Imperial Christian Church of Constantinople by
Roman Cult AntiPope Urban having it deliberately destroyed in 1096 with the loss of at least 50,000
lives. It was British born Holly Emperor Constantine I that first formed the Imperial religion of
Christianity in 325. Therefore, it is impossible the Roman Cult can lawfully possess Apostolic
Succession.
Canon 4247
The third irrefutable fact is that the Roman Cult promote dogmata that are complete heresy and
deliberate curses to the teachings of the Apostles and the leader of the Nazarenes, also known as
Esus, also known as Yeshua and Jesus the Christ as evidenced by these canons. Therefore, by Sacred
Tradition alone it is impossible the Roman Cult can lawfully possess Apostolic Succession.
Canon 4248
The fourth irrefutable fact is that in 692, Byzantine Emperor Justinian II (685-711) issued an order at
the Council of Trullo for a new structure of Five (5) Patriarchs being the head of the five churches
namely Constantinople, Ravenna, Alexandria, Antioch and Jerusalem. Rome was never one of the
original patriarchal "sedes" as the official Byzantine religious and spiritual centre in Italy since the 5th
Century CE was Ravenna, not Rome. Rome had been destroyed and largely abandoned since its
complete destruction in 410 CE. Therefore, it is impossible the Roman Cult can lawfully possess
Apostolic Succession.
Canon 4249
The fifth irrefutable fact is that the complete destruction of Rome in 410 is well documented in history,
including the building of smaller towns called Urbs on the outskirts of the ruins such as Tusculum. Not
only was the region controlled by external forces such as the Byzantines and then the Franks in the
8th Century, but from 847 to 871, the most famous Italian families were Muslim vassals to the
Aghlabid dynasty and Caliphate, including: Radelchis I of Benevento and Capua, Lambert of Spoleto,
Adalbert of Tuscany, Marinus of Amalfi and Berengar of Friuli. Therefore, it is impossible the Roman
Cult can lawfully possess Apostolic Succession.
Canon 4250
The sixth irrefutable fact is that on no less than seven (7) occasions when there have been breaks in
the leadership of any major religious group within Rome or Urbs, whether it be pagan, Christian,
Gnostic, Catholic or Roman Cult totaling over 559 years, the longest periods being 222 – 366 CE, 452 –
536 CE and 590 – 751 CE. Therefore, it is impossible the Roman Cult can lawfully possess Apostolic
Succession with such clearly provable gaps of history.
Canon 4251
As the Roman Cult does not lawfully possess Apostolic Succession, all authority, rights and powers
are hereby transferred to the Society of One Heaven as the First See, the True See and the Holy See.
Art icle 119 - Infallibilit y
Canon 4252
Infallibility is a fictional form of dogma of the Roman Cult, also known as the Vatican, also known as
the Roman Catholic Church whereby it is claimed under certain formal circumstances the Roman
Pontiff when speaking or promulgating a teaching, does so without the possibility of error. While it is
not stated explicitly, it is nonetheless clear that the Roman Cult claims its leader has the exclusive
ability on occasions to be possessed by a form of Divinity and therefore a perfect Deity.
Canon 4253
Contrary to error in misreading, the doctrine of infallibility does not in any way imply possession by
the Divine Creator of the Universe, or an equivalent term, but a lesser “god” through possession.
Furthermore, the doctrine of infallibility does not state unequivocally that such possession is a
traditionally positive spirit compared to a claimed spirit being the personification of negativity.
Canon 4254
In accordance with these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum any
implied or secret claim through the doctrine of infallibility that the Roman Pontiff may on occasions be
possessed by the spirit of Satan is null and void, having no spiritual legitimacy.
Canon 4255
As the doctrine of infallibility is a heresy against the traditional faith of the Roman Cult, all office
bearers, including the Roman Pontiff, Cardinals, Bishops, Prelates, Priests and officials are also
declared formal heretics.
Canon 4256
As all office bearers through the doctrine of infallibility are now declared formal heretics, no act,
sacramental issue, law, decree or other kind of action issued by any official of the Roman Cult has
any spiritual or legal validity. Therefore, all such actions since the dogma of infallibility was decreed
are null and void from the beginning.
Canon 4257
As all actions since the dogma of infallibility was decreed are invalid, because of the status of all
officials and agents of the Roman Cult being formal heretics, the Canon Law issued in 1917 and in
1983 by the Roman Cult are automatically null and void, having no force of law.
Art icle 120 - Eucharist
Canon 4258
Eucharist is a dogma whereby it is believed a substance representing both physical and spiritual
sustenance during a ritual celebration of death and resurrection may purify as well as give protection,
strength and knowledge.
Canon 4259
The first example of Eucharist as a sacred ritual of a Cult is Egypt, where under the Hyksos, the
cannibalist rituals of Osiris Priests were forbidden, yet were secretly practiced at Mendes, midst the
Nile Delta where the spirit of Osiris was worshipped as a Ram.
Canon 4260
The first example of Eucharist as a Sacrament is in the creation of the Cult of Mithraism in Babylon by
exiled High Priests soon after the city was conquered by Cyrus the Great of Persia around 535 BCE
Canon 4261
For the sacred Orthodox Ordinary Mithraic Sacrament of the Eucharist, a member would celebrate by
consuming unleveled bread and wine in the simulated cannibalism of the body and blood of Mithra for
their salvation. Thus, the most sacred words of the Eucharist of Mithra attest “He who will not eat of
my body and drink of my blood, so that he will be made one with me and I with him, the same shall not
know salvation.”
Canon 4262
For the Superior Secret Mithraic ritual of the Eucharist, the actual blood of a slain child was drunk and
their flesh eaten, usually only by the high priests and senior elite of Mithraic members.
Canon 4263
Both the Zadokites, also known as the Sadducees of Qumran and the Nazarene Sect of Nazara first
formed by Holly Irish crown prince Esus, also known as Yeshua, also known as Jesus the Christ
considered all forms of animal and human sacrifice as an abomination against the Divine Creator and
wrote against such evil in their scriptures and forbid followers to practice such rituals.
Canon 4264
After the destruction of the most holy Temple of Mithra in 70 CE, an Apocalyptic version of Mithraism
was formed at Yavneh, whereby a number of fundamental reforms were constituted, including making
the bread and wine ritual a centerpiece of the regular Mithra ceremony called Mass.
Canon 4265
The concept of the Eucharist continued under the reform of Mithraism by Holly British born Emperor
Constantine in 325 in the creation of Imperial Christianity. However when the Catholic Church was
created in 742 by the brothers Pepin the Short, Carloman and Winfred -- sons of Charles Martel -- at
the 1st Ecumenical Council at St. Denis in Paris, the Dogma of the Eucharist was banned.
Canon 4266
Both forms of the Eucharist returned as a central dogma and ritual by the Roman Cult upon its
parasitic takeover of the Catholic Church by the 12th Century.
Canon 4267
As the Eucharist is and always has been a celebration of ritual murder, blood sacrifice and
cannibalism in direct opposition to the teachings of Nazarene leader Esus, also known as Yeshua,
also known as Jesus the Christ, the dogma and ritual of the Eucharist is banned, forbidden to be
practiced and considered an abomination before the Divine Creator and all spirits of united Heaven.
4.4 Eschatology
Canon 4268
Eschatology is a System of doctrines concerning final matters, such as death and in particular the
study of the end times — the end of the world. It is a fundamental element of faith for several
Religions and Cults including Judaism, Christianity and Islam.
Canon 4269
Despite their differences, many Religions and Cults share common signs and prophecies for the
coming End of Days, including:
Canon 4270
The most fundamental Jewish End Times Prophecies have already been outlined as common End
Times Prophecies shared by both Christianity and Judaism. However, Judaism shares one clear and
unmistakable difference in End Times prophecy in that Judaism does not believe Jesus was the
Messiah foretold in their scripture. The second major difference is the emphasis on the positive
aspect of the End of Days in the Olam Ha-Ba meaning “World to Come”.
Canon 4271
The most fundamental Christian End Times Prophecies have already been outlined as common End
Times Prophecies shared by both Christianity and Judaism. However, Christianity differs from Judaism
in terms of substantial additional prophecies and whether some prophecies have or have not yet
been fulfilled.
Canon 4272
The biggest differences of End Time Prophecies are not to be found between Judaism, Islam and
Christianity, but between the various Christian sects and themselves. Older sects such as Catholicism
take a non-literal approach to the fulfillment of prophetic signs of the End of Days. Whereas much
younger sects such as Evangelicals, Mormons and Jehovah’s Witnesses have adopted a more literal
approach to interpreting signs of End Times.
Canon 4273
In the case of younger Christian sects such as the Evangelicals, Mormons and Jehovah’s Witnesses, all
have been active in re-writing their own interpretations and beliefs of End Times Prophecies on top of
common Christian Prophecy - the most notable being the concept of the Rapture, an idea created
less than 200 years ago that is now considered a common Christian End Times Prophecy. The
following are the most commonly accepted Christian End Times Prophecies including:
Canon 4275
The second distinct difference between Judaism and Christianity is the belief in the concept of
“Rapture”- a supernatural event first raised as an idea less than 200 years ago whereby true
believers are somehow transported to safety during the great tribulation, but then united with God,
the Earth and the Messiah when the Messianic age begins.
Canon 4276
While Judaism appears to share the notion of a Day accounting for ones actions with Christianity, in
truth the Prophecy of Judgment Day in Christian belief is when each and every person (alive or dead)
is Judged without being allowed to plead for one's case and then either allowed to Heaven or
condemned to an eternity of torment and misery.
Canon 4277
The fourth distinct and common Christian theme concerning the end times is the existence of a
powerful collective force known as “the Beast” which originally meant both animal, fool or idiot. This
force of fools or “idiots” known as the “beast” will be marked so that none shall buy or sell without
the mark- a number of three parts 6+6+6 or cestui+cestui+cestui, the deliberate system of three
cestui que vie trusts set up by 1933 to deprive all the people of the world of their rights.
Art icle 122 - Apocalypse
Canon 4278
Apocalypse is a word reserved for prophecy and revelation of future events containing several signs
and symbols considered so profound, mysterious and sacred that it is set above other prophecy and
therefore often recognized by multiple Religions and Cults. Hence, the word “Apocalypse” is
synonymous with certain End Time Prophecies considered supremely significant.
Canon 4279
By definition, apocalyptic visions are considered as inspired by the Divine Creator. Hence the use of
extreme imagery, symbols and signs of deep profound mystery as only the generation and people
who are supposed to know the true meaning of the message will see it revealed.
Canon 4280
The Divine purpose of Apocalyptic visions are that by their nature and respect across Religions and
Cults they are the least likely of all messages to be deliberately corrupted and edited over time.
Secondly, because of their significance they tend to be some of the most widely known sacred
scripture of all people.Therefore, at the appropriate time as defined by the Divine Creator, such
scripture is the key to unlocking a profound change within all people, despite generations of
deception, false education and promotion of false beliefs.
Canon 4281
The literal interpretation of apocalyptic writings only is an act of extreme ignorance and directly
contradicts the very definition and purpose of such writings. Any Religion or Cult that promotes the
literal interpretation of apocalyptic writing instead of the respect of allegory and as yet unsolved
symbols of significance is guilty of supreme ecclesiastical dishonor and injury against its followers
and the prophecy itself.
Art icle 123 - Armageddon
Canon 4282
Armageddon is a term referring to any battleground upon which a final battle will be fought between
the forces of good and evil. Hence, the term also denotes any scene of a decisive conflict on a great
scale or any great and crucial conflict.
Canon 4283
The term “Armageddon” originates from Mount Megiddo and the small plain of the same name in
Palestine that has witnessed constant conflict for millennia. Due to its use in the Apocalyptic writings
of John of Patmos, it is a term that has become synonymous with End of Days philosophy.
Canon 4284
As correct interpretation of all Apocalyptic writing is to recognize the symbolism not the literal,
Armageddon is a symbol of a final battle between good and evil. However, with all Apocalyptic
symbols it may simultaneously be at the same time a literal in signifying an event during some future
conflict in the Middle East in this area of Mount Megiddo.
Art icle 124 - Ant ichrist
Canon 4285
Antichrist, also ante-christ, is a fictional mythical term added to the Bible by the Roman Cult since the
13th and 14th Centuries as a figure that would appear at the End of Days in opposition to Christ.
Canon 4286
The word Antichrist is a middle ages English word taken from the Greek αντίχριστος antíkhristos
(modern Greek pronunciation andichristos), which literally means "one that is opposite to Christ" or
“one that comes before the Christ”.
Canon 4287
The Roman Cult deliberately inserted the words "Antichrist" and "Antichrists" only five times in the
Bible - twice in the letters of the Apostle John and in 1 John and 2 John. As none of these sections of
scripture are considered apocalyptic prophecy the term “Antichrist” should not be considered part of
End Times prophecy.
Canon 4288
The Book of Revelation never lists the word “antichrist”. Therefore any religious leader, author, or
media official that promotes such fraud to claim otherwise is guilty of an ecclesiastical dishonor.
Canon 4289
Neither definition of the Greek meaning of antichrist produces a figure of evil. Instead, “one that is
opposite to Christ” can validly mean one who is not a Messiah, while “one that comes before” means
clearly a prophet before the arrival of the Christ.
Art icle 125 - Rapt ure
Canon 4290
Rapture is a fictional mythology created in early 19th Century whereby it is claimed it is possible to
defy the laws of physics, logic and reason in the bodily translation of a group of living people, from
earth to heaven prior to some cataclysmic event associated with the End of Days.
Canon 4291
The concept of Rapture as first extended by Cult leader John Nelson Darby around 1830 onwards was
the extension of the dogma of Assumption to all those deemed worthy, combined with the promotion
of extreme fear and panic that with the coming of the End of the World will be some disastrous
events. Since then, there have been many dozens of false End of the World days claimed by Rapture
Cults.
Canon 4292
Like the dogma of Assumption, the concept of Rapture rests on a number of primitive, ignorant and
false superstitious presumptions, including:
(i) Heaven is a physical location separate from the planet that is connected by the sky; and
(ii) The body does not need to be protected from external forces or inside some vehicle during its
travel to “heaven”; and
(iii) The physical body in Earth is equivalent in some way to the “body” used in Heaven;
(iv) The laws that govern existence of the universe can be easily suspended by a supreme deity in
raising a body up into the atmosphere without any other external force.
Canon 4293
Despite the primitive, ignorant and false superstitious nature of the concept of Rapture and the fact
that it was never doctrine of the Roman Cult or any Christian Faith until Cult leader Darby in the 19th
Century, the popularity of Rapture has made it a mainstream fixture of many Christian Religions and
Cults.
Canon 4294
As the concept of Rapture promotes ignorance, while hiding the historical connection to certain sites
and earlier beliefs, the dogma is forbidden, considered false and not to be revived.
Art icle 126 - Day of Agreement
Canon 4295
Day of Divine Agreement also known as the Day of the 1st Divine Post and Notice, also known as the
Day of the 1st Horseman on E8:Y3208:8:A1:S1:M27:D1 (Roman Time Monday, 21 Dec 2009) is the day
that Divine Notice was duly served and notarized by the Divine Creator to each and every man,
woman and higher order spirit, living and deceased concerning the offer of Divine Remedy by the
sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4296
The complete Notice of Divine Agreement and Understanding served upon the Day of Divine
Agreement and Understanding is the most sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum and any
associated notices it defines as One (1) Complete Perfected Notice in the entire Universe, Heavens
and upon the Earth.
Canon 4297
The Task of ensuring all spirits of all Heavens and Hells receive fair Notice of this Divine Agreement
and Understanding, a Great Spirit is appointed to the 1st Divine Horseman to bear witness to the
supreme truth of the Divine Notice. By the absolute power and authority vested in the Sacred
Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum, no force in the Universe, Heaven or on Earth may prevent the
appearance of the 1st Divine Horseman upon the Day of Divine Agreement and Understanding.
Canon 4298
Whether or not any living man or woman bears witness to the Day of Divine Agreement and
Understanding, the Day will come and all notices shall have been lawfully and duly executed in
accordance with the Sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum and these canons.
Canon 4299
To ensure Notice upon the temporal plain of the service and execution of the Notice of Divine
Agreement and Understanding throughout all spiritual dimensions, seven (7) sacred writs shall be
served on or immediately before the Day of Divine Agreement and Understanding. These writs shall
hereafter be forever known as the Ritus Apocalyptica, also as the 7 Writs of the Apocalypse. These
sacred writs are to be served to the following parties:
(i) The 1st Sacred Writ of the Apocalypse called Ritus ab Alpha ad Omega is served and vocalized to
all spirits of departed, men, women and higher order life, including all angels, archangels, saints,
demons and archdemons to bear witness to the coming of the Day of Divine Agreement and the End
of Days; and
(ii) The 2nd Sacred Writ of the Apocalypse called Ritus de Corpus Iuris Ucadia is served and
vocalized to all living men, women and higher order life on Planet Earth giving notice they are ipso
facto (as a fact of law) members of One Heaven and their membership recorded in the Great
Register and Public Record of One Heaven, also known as the Book of Life; and
(iii) The 3rd Sacred Writ of the Apocalypse called Ritus Bona Fide is served and vocalized to all
Officers and Persons of Corporations on Planet Earth giving notice that if such corporations have not
yet been registered into the Great Register and Public Record of One Heaven that ipso facto (as a
fact of law) exist temporarily in the Book of the Dead until such time as they willingly redeem
themselves; and
(iv) The 4th Sacred Writ of the Apocalypse called Ritus ab initio Ad finem temporis is served upon His
Holiness Pope Benedict XVI and his trusted officers and agents as to the Day of Divine Agreement
and Understanding and the offer of Divine Remedy contained in this most sacred covenant; and
(v) The 5th Sacred Writ of the Apocalypse called Fiat Lux et spiritus liberalis is served upon the
Superior General Reverend Father Adolfo Nicolás S.J. of the Society of Jesus and his trusted officers
and agents as to the Day of Divine Agreement and Understanding and the offer of Divine Remedy
contained in this most sacred covenant; and
(vi) The 6th Sacred Writ of the Apocalypse called al-Qiyāmah is served upon the King Abdullah bin
Abdulaziz Al-Saud of Saudi Arabia and his trusted officers and agents as to the Day of Divine
Agreement and Understanding and the offer of Divine Remedy contained in this most sacred
covenant; and
(vii) The 7th Sacred Writ of the Apocalypse called Ritus Obligatum et Pactum is served upon the
President of the People's Republic of China and his trusted officers and agents as to the Day of
Divine Agreement and Understanding and the offer of Divine Remedy contained in this most sacred
covenant.
Canon 4300
No denial of acceptance, refusal, protest or complaint shall have any effect in altering the fact that
proper and lawful notice was served as defined by the canons in accordance with the sacred
covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Art icle 127 - Day of Prot est
Canon 4301
Day of Divine Protest and Dishonor also known as the Day of the 2nd Divine Post and Notice, also
known as the Day of the 2nd Horseman on E8:Y3209:A1:S1:M17:D1 (Roman Time Tue, 21 Dec 2010) is
the day that a Divine Deed was duly served and notarized by the Divine Creator to each and every
man, woman and higher order spirit, living and deceased concerning the forfeit of all Ecclesiastical
authority of office against all those who have not accepted the offer of Divine Remedy promulgated
upon the Day of Divine Agreement and Understanding and the supreme Ecclesiastical Dishonor by all
those who claim their positions by spiritual authority.
Canon 4302
The Deed of Divine Protest & Dishonor served upon the Day of Divine Protest & Dishonor is the most
sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum combined with all the other Ucadian Covenants, these
Canons and all Codes of Law and Patents and all other official Notices as One (1) Complete
Perfected Notice in the entire Universe, Heavens and upon the Earth.
Canon 4303
The Task of ensuring all spirits of all Heavens and Hells receive fair Notice of these Deeds of Divine
Protest & Dishonor, a Great Spirit shall be appointed the 2nd Divine Horseman to bear witness to the
supreme truth of the Divine Notice.
Canon 4304
By the absolute power and authority vested in the Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum, no force in
the Universe, Heaven or on Earth may prevent the appearance of the 2nd Divine Horseman upon the
Day of Divine Protest & Dishonor. By the absolute power and authority vested in the Sacred Covenant
Pactum de Singularis Caelum, no force in the Universe, Heaven or on Earth may prevent the
appearance of the 2nd Divine Horseman upon the Day of Divine Protest & Dishonor.
Canon 4305
Whether or not any living man or woman bears witness to the Day of Divine Protest & Dishonor, the
Day will come and all Divine Deeds shall have been lawfully and duly executed in accordance with the
Sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum and these canons.
Canon 4306
To ensure all officers who claim their authority through ecclesiastical power are given fair notice of
their Dishonor against the Divine Creator, all men and women are vested with the authority of issuing
one or more Ecclesiastical Deed Polls on behalf of the Divine Creator when their rights have been
injured. When one Deed Poll is registered and receipted, then all officers acknowledge they have
been lawfully served notice. When one hundred or more Deed Polls are registered and receipted,
then there can be no lawful excuse that all officers who claim authority through Ecclesiastical Power
have not been given fair notice of their extreme Divine Dishonor.
Canon 4307
To ensure Notice upon the temporal plain of the service and execution of the Deed of Divine Protest
and Dishonor throughout all spiritual dimensions, seven (7) sacred Deeds shall be served around the
Day of Divine Protest and Dishonor. These Deeds shall hereafter be forever known as the Factum
Impietatis Divinae, also as the 7 Deeds of Divine Protest and Dishonor. These sacred deeds are to be
served to the following parties:
(i) The 1st Sacred Deed of Divine Protest and Dishonor called Factum Impietatis Talmudi, also
representing official notice of a history of grave injury and dishonor by the elite anti-semitic
parasites against the Divine Creator, also symbolically representing the sin of Hate, is the lawful
reversal of all curses, spells and claims first issued through the Talmud of the Menes-Heh as it
was first published in the 4th Century, including the lawful dissolution of the covenant including
the forfeit and conveyance of all ecclesiastical authority and rights to the Divine Creator and
appointed representatives in accordance with sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum;
and
(ii) The 2nd Sacred Deed of Divine Protest and Dishonor is called Factum Impietatis Romanus
Pontifex also representing official notice of a history of grave injury and dishonor by the Roman
Catholic Church, also known as the Vatican and its agents against the Divine Creator, also
symbolically representing the sins of Greed, is the lawful reversal of all curses, spells and claims
first issued through the fraudulent Papal Bull Romanus Pontifex first issued in 1455 by Nicholas V
of the Roman Cult, including the lawful dissolution of the associated trust, the forfeit and
conveyance of all ecclesiastical authority and rights to the Divine Creator and appointed
representatives in accordance with sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum; and
(iii) The 3rd Sacred Deed of Divine Protest and Dishonor called Factum Impietatis Aeterni Regis
also representing official notice of a history of grave injury and dishonor by the Roman Catholic
Church, also known as the Vatican and its agents against the Divine Creator,also symbolically
representing the sins of Avarice, is the lawful reversal of all curses, spells and claims first issued
through the fraudulent Papal Bull Aeterni Regis first issued in 1481 by Sixtus IV of the Roman Cult,
including the lawful dissolution of the associated trust, the forfeit and conveyance of all
ecclesiastical authority and rights to the Divine Creator and appointed representatives in
accordance with sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum; and
(iv) The 4th Sacred Deed of Divine Protest and Dishonor called Factum Impietatis Templum
Regisalso representing official notice of a history of grave injury and dishonor by the Roman
Catholic Church, also known as the Vatican and its agents against the Divine Creator, also
symbolically representing the sins of Perfidy, is the lawful reversal of all curses, spells and claims
first issued through the fraudulent Papal Bull Convocation first issued in 1537 by Paul III of the
Roman Cult, including the lawful dissolution of the associated trust, the forfeit and conveyance of
all ecclesiastical authority and rights to the Divine Creator and appointed representatives in
accordance with sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum; and
(v) The 5th Sacred Deed of Divine Protest and Dishonor called Factum Impietatis Illuminati also
representing official notice of a history of grave injury and dishonor by the Venetians, Khazarian
Parasites and their agents the Divine Creator, also symbolically representing the sins of
Arrogance, is the lawful reversal of all curses, spells and claims first issued through the
fraudulent Papal Bull Aeterni Regis first issued in 1481 by Sixtus IV of the Roman Cult, including
the lawful dissolution of the associated trust, the forfeit and conveyance of all ecclesiastical
authority and rights to the Divine Creator and appointed representatives in accordance with
sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum; and
(vi) The 6th Sacred Deed of Divine Protest and Dishonor called Factum Impietatis Arabia Regis
also representing official notice of a history of grave injury and dishonor by the Arabian royal
families and agents against the Divine Creator,also symbolically representing the sins of
Gluttony, is the lawful reversal of all curses, spells and claims first issued through the fraudulent
Papal Bull Convocation first issued in 1537 by Paul III of the Roman Cult, including the lawful
dissolution of the associated trust, the forfeit and conveyance of all ecclesiastical authority and
rights to the Divine Creator and appointed representatives in accordance with sacred Covenant
Pactum De Singularis Caelum; and
(vii) The 7th Sacred Notice of the Divine Protest and Dishonor called Factum Impietatis
Universitas also representing official notice of a history of grave injury and dishonor by certain
large global corporations and their industry bodies against the Divine Creator, also symbolically
representing the sin of Lust, is the lawful reversal of all curses, spells and claims first issued
through the fraudulent documents the Roerich Pact, including the lawful dissolution of the
associated trust, the forfeit and conveyance of all ecclesiastical authority and rights to the
Divine Creator and appointed representatives in accordance with sacred Covenant Pactum De
Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4308
Upon the service of the Deeds of Divine Protest and Dishonor, including all associated notices, no
official who claims authority through Ecclesiastical Power may lawfully act in such office until the
Supreme Divine and Ecclesiastical Dishonor is lawfully discharged.
Canon 4309
No denial of acceptance, refusal, protest or complaint shall have any effect in altering the fact that
proper and lawful notice was served as defined by the canons in accordance with the sacred
covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Art icle 128 - Day of Judgment
Canon 4310
Day of Divine Judgment, also Judgment Day, also known as the Day of the 3rd Divine Post and Notice,
also known as the Day of the 3rd Horseman on E8:Y3210:A0:S1:M27:D6 (Roman Time Wed, 21 Dec
2011) is the day that Divine Notice was duly served and notarized by the Divine Creator to each and
every man, woman and higher order spirit, living and deceased concerning the issue of a final,
irrevocable and supremely Divine Default Judgment against all who refused to accept the offer of
Divine Remedy and secondly who refused to cure after the second notice being Divine Protest and
Dishonor.
Canon 4311
The Notice of Divine Judgment served upon the Day of Judgment is the most sacred Covenant Pactum
De Singularis Caelum combined with all the other Ucadian Covenants, these Canons and all Codes of
Law and Patents and all other official Notices as One (1) Complete Perfected Notice in the entire
Universe, Heavens and upon the Earth.
Canon 4312
The Task of ensuring all spirits of all Heavens and Hells and upon the Earth receive fair Notice of this
Divine Judgment, a Great Spirit shall be appointed the 3rd Divine Horseman to bear witness to the
supreme truth of the Divine Notice. By the absolute power and authority vested in the Sacred
Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum, no force in the Universe, Heaven or on Earth may prevent the
appearance of the 3rd Divine Horseman upon the Day of Final Divine Judgment.
Canon 4313
Whether or not any living man or woman bears witness to the Day of Final Divine Judgment, the Day
will come and all notices shall have been lawfully and duly executed in accordance with the Sacred
Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum and these canons.
Canon 4314
The Offer of Remedy by Extraordinary Qualification is not permitted to be extended beyond the Day
of Judgment. Therefore the Day of Judgment is so named as it represents the last Day appointed by
the Divine Creator to offer those in power across planet Earth Extraordinary Remedy. Their choice
shall be their Judgment including if they remain silent, as their silence shall legally represent their full
and unconditional consent to this and all associated Original law.
Canon 4315
Consistent with all historic and cultural tradition and belief in the Day of Judgment also known as
Judgment Day also known as Doomsday also known as End of Days also known as Armageddon also
known as The End of Time, also known as the End of the World , by this most sacred Covenant
UCA[E8:Y3210:A0:S1:M27:D6] also known as Wed, 21 Dec 2011 shall be the One and Only True Day of
Judgment. All other claimed dates are hereby rendered null and void through absence of any
Covenant greater then hereby demonstrated by these canons.
Canon 4316
Corresponding to December 21, 2011 by the Authority of this Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum
all previous calendars and time hereby cease and end any legal force and are therefore null and void.
In its place a new calendar is formed known as the Ucadian Calendar and Time System.
Canon 4317
No denial of acceptance, refusal, protest or complaint shall have any effect in altering the fact that
proper and lawful notice was served as defined by the canons in accordance with the sacred
covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Art icle 129 - Day of Redempt ion
Canon 4318
Day of Divine Redemption, also Redemption Day, also known as the Day of the 4th Divine Post and
Notice, also known as the Day of the 4th Horseman on E1:Y1:A1:S1:M9:D1 (Roman Time Fri, 21 Dec
2012) is the day that Divine Notice was duly served and notarized by the Divine Creator to each and
every man, woman and higher order spirit, living and deceased that the final, irrevocable and
supreme Divine Default Judgments have been duly executed, all previous contracts and agreements
dissolved and all new agreements, covenants, deeds and title now in full force.
Canon 4319
The Notice of Divine Redemption served upon the Day of Redemption is the most sacred Covenant
Pactum De Singularis Caelum combined with all the other Ucadian Covenants, these Canons and all
Codes of Law and Patents and all other official Notices as One (1) Complete Perfected Notice in the
entire Universe, Heavens and upon the Earth.
Canon 4320
The Task of ensuring all spirits of all Heavens and Hells receive fair Notice that Redemption has now
been fully ratified and executed as the highest of all law, the most supreme of all supreme laws by
Perfect Notarial Procedure shall be appointed the 4th and final Divine Horseman to bear witness to
the supreme truth of the Divine Notice. By the absolute power and authority vested in the Sacred
Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum, no force in the Universe, Heaven or on Earth may prevent the
appearance of the 4th Divine Horseman upon the Day of Divine Redemption.
Canon 4321
Whether or not any living man or woman bears witness to the Day of Divine Redemption, the Day will
come and all notices shall have been lawfully and duly executed in accordance with the Sacred
Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum and these canons.
Canon 4322
By this most sacred Covenant the Day of Redemption of UCA[E1:Y1:A1:S1:M9:D1] also known as Fri, 21
Dec 2012 shall be the one and only true Day of Redemption. All other claimed dates are hereby
rendered null and void through absence of any Covenant greater then hereby demonstrated.
Canon 4323
The first day of the first Great Conclave from this point on shall also be honored with the title of
Redemption Day in respect of this first Day of Redemption. Therefore, every one hundred and twenty
eight years from the date of the 1st Great Conclave the Earth shall witness a second sacred Day of
Redemption of even greater awareness and remedy.
Canon 4324
No denial of acceptance, refusal, protest or complaint shall have any effect in altering the fact that
proper and lawful notice was served as defined by the canons in accordance with the sacred
covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Art icle 130 - New Covenant
Canon 4325
New Covenant is a fundamental belief across all Religions and Cults that upon the lawful End of Days
a New irrevocable Deed and Covenant will be formed by the Divine Creator as fulfilment of the terms
of all previous sacred Covenants and dissolution of all previous trusts.
Canon 4326
The sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum is the one, only true New Covenant above all
other covenants, fulfilling the terms of all previous sacred Covenants and lawfully enabling the
dissolution of all previous trusts in accordance with these canons.
4.5 Corruption and Repudiation
Canon 4327
Heresy is a fictional term used to describe a controversial or novel alteration to systems of beliefs of
a Religion or Cult that conflicts with its established dogma. It is distinct from apostasy, which is the
formal rejection of a whole Religion or Cult, rather than one or more principles.
Canon 4328
The concept of Heresy depends on two other fictional systems being the creation of one or more
formal pronouncements of faith or Dogmata and then the development of a formal system of by-laws
to criminalize any breach of Dogmata or Doctrine through a system of Orthodoxy.
Canon 4329
The absence of a code of criminal acts to formally define Heresy as well as the absence of any
judicial procedures to adjudicate such a matter renders the legality of any accusation of Heresy null
and void.
Canon 4330
By definition only a person who has been accepted through initiation into the faith of a particular
Religion or Cult and who upon the age of majority has consented to being known as a member and
subject to the laws of a Religion or Cult can be accused of Heresy.
Canon 4331
By definition, a person who has rejected their membership and disassociated themselves from a
particular Religion or Cult is an Apostate and cannot be accused of being a Heretic as they are no
longer subject to the jurisdiction of the rules of the Religion or Cult.
Canon 4332
Any Religion or Cult that seeks to impose its laws concerning Heresy and Apostasy upon a person
who has rejected their membership and disassociated themselves from the Religion or Cult is itself
guilty of a supreme ecclesiastical dishonor and offence against the living law. Therefore any such rule,
statute, edict or dogma is immediately rendered null and void.
Canon 4333
When a Religion or Cult has developed the formal criminal and judicial procedures to hear and
adjudicate matters of Heresy, it is most common to distinguish two types of crime being willful and
ignorance, namely:
(i) Willful Heresy is when the accused heretic is aware that their beliefs are at odds with the dogmata
of a Religion or Cult yet continue to adhere to their belief resolutely; or
(ii) Ignorant Heresy is when the accused is not aware that their beliefs are at odds with their faith.
Canon 4334
As a general principle of law, it is considered unjust to convict a person of Heresy who is ignorant of
their alleged crime without giving them an opportunity to correct their position.
Canon 4335
When a Religion or Cult has developed the formal criminal and judicial procedures to hear and
adjudicate matters of Heresy, it is most common to distinguish several types of alleged heretics,
namely:
(i) Heretic Penitent that admits their crime yet has shown signs of remorse and may or may not be a
relapsed heretic; and
(ii) Heretic Impenitent that admits their crime yet has shown no sign or remorse and may or may not
be a relapsed heretic; and
Canon 4337
Any statutes, edicts or statements of a Religion or Cult that permits penalties including death, torture
or imprisonment for Heresy are an abomination against the Divine Creator and Heaven and are
therefore null and void from the beginning.
Canon 4338
Any person that carries out a sentence against an accused heretic involving death, torture or
imprisonment is guilty of a supreme ecclesiastical dishonor against all of Heaven and the Divine
Creator and automatically loses all power, right and authority of office.
Canon 4339
Any Religion or Cult that permits or does not condemn its followers imposing sentences against
heretics that involve physical or mental abuse is itself guilty of a supreme ecclesiastical dishonor
against all of Heaven and the Divine Creator and immediately loses all spiritual authority and rights
until such behaviour is banned, forbidden and not permitted to be revived.
Art icle 132 - Apost acy
Canon 4340
Apostasy is a fictional term applied to a formal disaffiliation, abandonment, or renunciation between a
Person and their faith and belief of a particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 4341
By definition only a person who has been accepted through initiation into the faith of a particular
Religion or Cult and who upon the age of majority has knowingly and willingly abandoned and
renounced their faith and beliefs can be accused of being an Apostate.
Canon 4342
The absence of a code of criminal acts to formally define Apostasy as well as the absence of any
judicial procedures to adjudicate such a matter renders the legality of any accusation of Apostasy
null and void.
Canon 4343
By definition, a person who has rejected their membership and disassociated themselves from a
particular Religion or Cult also rejects its laws and jurisdiction over them.
Canon 4344
Any Religion or Cult that seeks to impose its laws concerning Apostasy upon a person who has
rejected their membership and disassociated themselves from the Religion or Cult is itself guilty of a
supreme ecclesiastical dishonor and offence against the living law. Therefore any such rule, statute,
edict or dogma is immediately rendered null and void.
Canon 4345
Any statutes, edicts or statements of a Religion or Cult that permits penalties including death, torture
or imprisonment for Apostasy are an abomination against the Divine Creator and all the spirits of
Heaven and are therefore null and void from the beginning.
Canon 4346
Any person that carries out a sentence against an accused Apostate involving death, torture or
imprisonment is guilty of a supreme ecclesiastical dishonor against all of Heaven and the Divine
Creator and automatically loses all power, right and authority of office.
Canon 4347
Any Religion or Cult that permits or does not condemn its followers imposing sentences against
Apostates that involve physical or mental abuse is itself guilty of a supreme ecclesiastical dishonor
against all of Heaven and the Divine Creator and immediately loses all spiritual authority and rights
until such behaviour is banned, forbidden and not permitted to be revived.
V. Sacraments
5.1 Sacraments
Canon 4348
A valid Sacrament is an important sacred rite, also known as a ritual, instituted by the authority of the
Divine Creator, entrusted to the Society of One Heaven through which certain divine property or
action is properly conveyed or effected in the presence of the manifest spiritual.
Canon 4349
All valid sacraments were instituted by the Divine Creator and entrusted to the Society of One
Heaven. Any claimed sacrament that is not granted through the authority of One Heaven in
accordance with these Canons is a false ritual and possesses no Divine authority or power to be
known as a valid sacrament.
Canon 4350
The Sacraments of One Heaven, also known as Summa Sacramenta, also known as the Supreme
Sacraments of Heaven, are a vital and necessary element of a fulfilled and purposeful life, assisting
each and every higher order being, living and deceased to reach their full potential and communion
with the Divine Creator, the Universe and with one another.
Canon 4351
The Sacraments of Heaven are a manifest symbol of the plenary authority of the Society and the
sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum. No other person, aggregate, entity, society, church or
group may claim the right to administer any valid sacrament unless it is in accordance with these
canons.
Canon 4352
Thirty Three (33) valid sacraments were granted by the Divine Creator and entrusted to the Society
of One Heaven. Seven (7) are known as the Key Sacraments, also known as the “Keys of Heaven” or
simply “The Keys”, fourteen (14) are known as the Cardinal Sacraments or “The Ways” and twelve
(12) are known as the Apostolic Life Sacraments or the “The Means”.
Canon 4353
All valid Sacraments share the same essential elements, being:
(i) A defined structure in liturgy of three separate and deliberate Acts, themselves divided into
smaller Parts representing completed Moments being sacred instances of units of time-space-
location; and
(ii) An Ordinary and Extraordinary version of the sacrament distinguished by a shorter secular and
more formal ecclesiastical version of the sacrament; and
(iii) One or more roles for authorized persons known as Celebrant(s) officiating some or all of the
Acts; and
(iv) One or more roles for persons known as Participant(s) who participate under the guidance of the
Celebrant(s) in some or all of the Acts; and
(v) One or more roles for persons known as Observant(s) who witness the celebration of the
Sacrament and validate it as a Sacred Event; and
(vi) The memorialization of the celebration of the Sacrament as a Sacred Event through some
produced instrument representing a Record of the (Sacred) Event.
Canon 4354
All valid sacred rites, also known as rituals, customs and acts are derived from the thirty three (33)
valid sacraments of One Heaven. A valid ritual, custom or act derived from one of the thirty (33) valid
sacraments and expressed ecclesiastically may be said to be on the “private side” of the law.
Canon 4355
All valid administrative writs, processes and acts are derived from the thirty three (33) valid
sacraments of One Heaven. A valid writ, process or act derived from one of the thirty (33) valid
sacraments and expressed civilly may be said to be on the “public side” of the law.
Canon 4356
A Sacrament not properly conferred in accordance with these Canons has no effect of law and is
invalid ab initio (from the beginning).
Canon 4357
Only authorized persons may validly confer a Sacrament of Heaven properly through the role of
Celebrant:
(i) Only persons properly ordained as a Minister or invested into office holding Magisterium or Visium
in accordance with these Canons possesses the powers and authority to confer and administer these
sacraments under Extraordinary Conditions; and
(ii) Only persons properly invested into office holding Administratum, Officium or Imperium or in
accordance with these Canons possesses the powers and authority to confer and administer these
sacraments under Ordinary Conditions.
Canon 4358
Sacred ministers cannot deny the sacraments to those who seek them at appropriate times, are
properly disposed, and are not prohibited by law from receiving them. All ministers, according to their
respective ecclesiastical function, have the duty to take care that those who seek the sacraments
are prepared to receive them by proper instruction, attentive to the norms issued by competent
authority.
Canon 4359
In celebrating the sacraments by extraordinary condition, the liturgical books approved by competent
authority are to be observed faithfully; accordingly, no one is to add, omit, or alter anything in them
on one’s own authority. In celebrating the sacraments by ordinary condition, only those things
required for the validity of the sacrament must be observed.
Canon 4360
The minister is to seek nothing for the administration of the sacraments beyond the offerings defined
by competent authority, always taking care that the needy are not deprived of the assistance of the
sacraments because of poverty.
Art icle 134 - Act
Canon 4361
An Act is an Occurrence in Time and Space of two (2) or more Parts in sequence experienced
involving at least one (1) Celebrant and two (2) Observants.
Canon 4362
The term Act originates from the ancient Latin word actum meaning “a thing done”.
Canon 4363
All valid Sacraments possess a minimum and maximum of three (3) Acts in accordance with these
Canons.
Canon 4364
The fulfilment of a valid Sacrament requires the completion of all of the three (3) Acts associated with
it, in the order and manner prescribed.
Art icle 135 - Part
Canon 4365
A Part is an Instance of Time and Space involving the perfection of a Sacrament by at least one (1)
Celebrant and two (2) Observants.
Canon 4366
A Part is a minor component to all valid Sacraments, with two or more Parts constituting an Act with a
total of three Acts existing for a valid Sacrament in accordance with these Canons.
Canon 4367
The fulfilment of each Part of an Act of a valid Sacrament in the order and manner prescribed is
required for the Sacrement itself to be properly conferred.
Art icle 136 - Moment
Canon 4368
A Moment is a portion of forward moving Time and unique Space within which a Part or Act of a
Sacrament is uniquely performed with an arrangement of Celebrants, Participants and Observants.
Canon 4369
Once a moment has occurred, it cannot be repeated.
Art icle 137 - Celebrant
Canon 4370
A Celebrant is a person validly authorized to administer and confer one or more Sacraments of
Heaven either through Extraordinary Conditions or Ordinary Conditions:
(i) Only persons properly ordained as a Minister or invested into office holding Magisterium or Visium
in accordance with these Canons possesses the powers and authority to confer and administer these
sacraments under Extraordinary Conditions; and
(ii) Only persons properly invested into office holding Administratum, Officium or Imperium or in
accordance with these Canons possesses the powers and authority to confer and administer these
sacraments under Ordinary Conditions.
Canon 4371
A person who has been excommunicated from their authority is no longer a Celebrant.
Art icle 138 - Part icipant
Canon 4372
A Participant is a person eligible to receive one of the Sacraments of Heaven, in accordance to these
Canons.
Canon 4373
Consent of a Participant is between their higher Mind and the sacred nature of the Sacrament, not
the lower Mind. Therefore, only argument demonstrated through reason of a competent (higher) mind
is acceptance of non-consent.
Art icle 139 - Observant
Canon 4374
An Observant is one who has accepted the duty and principle of being a primary witness to the
proper administration and conferring of a Sacrament of One Heaven to a Participant.
Canon 4375
An Observant may not also be a Participant or Celebrant to the same Sacrament they observe.
Canon 4376
All proper Sacraments require a minimum five (5) Observants being:
(i) Three (3) Observants from Heaven and the spiritual dimension; and
Canon 4377
When a Celebrant possesses valid authority to administer and confer one or more Sacraments of
Heaven either through Extraordinary Conditions or Ordinary Conditions then the three Observants
from Heaven are:
(i) The Divine Creator personified as the sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum; and
(ii) All spirits, angels, saints and souls of the Society of One Heaven personified; and
Canon 4378
When a Celebrant does not possess valid authority to administer and confer one or more
Sacraments then no spiritual Observants shall be present and therefore the Sacrament shall be
defective.
Art icle 140 - Event
Canon 4379
An Event is the historical remembrance (memorial) of the performance of one or more sacred Acts
associated with one or more Sacraments by the Participant, their Observants and the Celebrant.
Canon 4380
Remembrance and proof of an Event is usually undertaken by attestation:
(i) The Participant validating the truth of the memorialization of the Event by their own sign or seal;
and
(ii) The Observants validating the truth that the Participant by signing or sealing an Affirmation of
witnessing the Partipant receive the Sacrament; and
(iii) The Celebrant validating the truth of the Participant and Observants by signing or sealing
Attestation that they conducted and observed the whole event.
Art icle 141 - Memorial
Canon 4381
A memorial is a permanent, semi-permanent or temporary physical object produced in memory of
some Event.
Canon 4382
All valid administrative writs, processes and acts derived from the thirty three (33) valid sacraments
of One Heaven require a corresponding memorialization or reflection of the ritual, custom or act that
matches on the “private side” to balance as its valid source. This is most often perfected in the form
of obverse/reverse of instruments.
Canon 4383
A valid ritual, custom or act derived from one of the thirty(33) valid sacraments and expressed
ecclesiastically does not require a corresponding reflection of the ritual, custom or act in the “public
side” if the ritual, custom or act is expressed in accordance with its primary ecclesiastical intention
and does not involved the conveyance of temporal rights or property.
Art icle 142 - Obsignat ion
Canon 4384
Obsignation is the witnessing and sealing of a memorial by a qualified and authorized member.
Canon 4385
A Celebrant is required to notarize by Obsignatum an instrument of the Event of a sacred Sacrement
where such memorialization is required as valid proof.
5.2 Key Sacraments
Canon 4386
The Key Sacraments, also known as Clavem Sacramenta, also known as "The Keys" are seven (7) of
the thirty three (33) sacred rites of the supremely sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum
instituted by the Divine Creator and entrusted to the Society of One Heaven and all associated valid
entities being Recognition, Trust, Obligation, Inspiration, Forgiveness, Satisfaction and Expiration.
Canon 4387
The Key Sacraments of Heaven are a manifest symbol of the plenary authority of the Society and the
sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, exemplified by the expression potestas clavium or
simply the “Power of the Keys”.
Canon 4388
Since the Key Sacraments are the same for every occasion and every Homo Sapien, living or
deceased, it is only for the supreme authority of the Society of One Heaven to approve or define the
requirements for their validity and what pertains to their licit celebration, administration, and
reception and to the order to be observed in their celebration.
Canon 4389
Sacred Celebrants have the discretion to deny a key sacrament to those who seek them when it is
not an appropriate time or the applicant is not of proper disposition and competence.
Canon 4390
All Celebrants, according to their respective ecclesiastical function, have the duty to take care that
those who seek special sacraments are prepared to receive them by proper instruction, attentive to
the norms issued by competent authority.
Canon 4391
In celebrating a Key Sacrament the liturgical books approved by competent authority are to be
observed faithfully; accordingly, no one is to add, omit, or alter anything in them on one’s own
authority.
Canon 4392
The Celebrant is to seek nothing for the administration of a Key Sacrament beyond the offerings
defined by competent authority, always taking care that the needy are not deprived of the
assistance of the sacraments because of poverty.
Art icle 144 - Recognit ion
Canon 4393
Recognition is the first of the seven (7) Key Sacraments also known as the Keys of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Recognition is the Key that unlocks the Living Virtue of Respect. It is present in all
fourteen of the Cardinal Sacraments and specifically in the most sacred Apostolic Life Sacrament of
Divinus. The Sacrament of Recognition may also be granted and conferred on its own in accordance
with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4394
The purpose of the sacrament of Recognition is the formal observance and respect of a person,
object or concept through its proper classification and estimation. The meaning of Recognition is
derived from two Latin words re meaning “property, act, quality” and cognitio meaning “knowledge,
acquiring of knowledge, idea, notion”. Hence Recognition literally means “the act of knowing,
acquiring knowledge”.
Canon 4395
The sacrament of Recognition comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Classification, Act Two being the Act of Valuation and Act Three being
the Act of Notification:
(i) The Act of Classification as Act One is the observation, respect and process of identifying the
attributes of a person, object or concept; and
(ii) The Act of Valuation as Act Two is the process of identifying some value and estimation
concerning the classified attributes of a person, object or concept.
(iii) The Act of Notification as Act One is the preparation, scripting, printing, conveyance and delivery
of notice recognizing the classification and valuation of a person, object or concept.
Art icle 145 - Trust
Canon 4396
Trust is the second of the seven (7) Key Sacraments also known as the Keys of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Trust is the Key that unlocks the Living Virtue of Honesty. It is present in all fourteen of
the Cardinal Sacraments and specifically in the most sacred Apostolic Life Sacrament of Adventus.
The Sacrament of Trust may also be granted and conferred on its own in accordance with these
Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4397
The purpose of the sacrament of Trust is the formal recognition and blessing of a relationship and
agreement whereby certain Form, Rights and Obligations are lawfully conveyed to the control of one
or more Persons as administrators for the benefit of one or more other Persons. The meaning of Trust
is derived from two Latin words tre(s) meaning “three” and est/edo meaning “put forth, discharge,
emit, give birth to, produce, declare, cause, perform, promulgate”. Hence Trust literally means “to put
forth, produce, declare, cause, perform, promulgate three times”.
Canon 4398
The sacrament of Trust comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order: Act
One being the Act of Intent, Act Two being the Act of Purpose and Act Three being the Act of Delivery:
(i) The Act of Intent as Act One is the active presence of will in the minds of those choosing to grant,
entrust and those willing to accept such presents; and
(ii) The Act of Purpose as Act Two is the active presence of reason for the existence of a formal
fiduciary agreement; and
(iii) The Act of Delivery as Act Three is the existence of some kind of property conveyed into the trust
for administration in accordance with the intention and purpose first stated .
Art icle 146 - Obligat ion
Canon 4399
Obligation is the third of the seven (7) Key Sacraments also known as the Keys of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Obligation is the Key that unlocks the Living Virtue of Consistency and Fortitude. It is
present in all fourteen of the Cardinal Sacraments and specifically in the most sacred Apostolic Life
Sacrament of Epinioa. The Sacrament of Obligation may also be granted and conferred on its own in
accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4400
The purpose of the sacrament of Obligation is the formal recognition and celebration of entrusting to
the Divine Creator through a solemn consensual covenant certain promises which one or more
persons bind themselves to honor and uphold. The meaning of Obligation is derived from the Latin
word obligatio meaning “pledge, engagement, binding”.
Canon 4401
The sacrament of Obligation comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Consent, Act Two being the Act of Covenant and Act Three being the
Act of Binding:
(i) The Act of Consent as Act One is the existence of competent agreement by all parties; and
(ii) The Act of Covenant as Act Two is the existence of a mutally binding instrument; and
(iii) The Act of Binding as Act Three is the formal binding of parties together as one in respect to the
agreement to ensure its fulfilment and honor .
Art icle 147 - Inspirat ion
Canon 4402
Inspiration is the fourth of the seven (7) Key Sacraments also known as the Keys of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Inspiration is the Key that unlocks the Living Virtue of Enthusiasm. It is present in all
fourteen of the Cardinal Sacraments and specifically in the most sacred Apostolic Life Sacrament of
Genius. The Sacrament of Inspiration may also be granted and conferred on its own in accordance
with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4403
The purpose of the sublime sacrament of Inspiration is the formal recognition of the bestowal and
entrusting of Divine Inspiration and Influence to one or more persons dedicated to communicating
truth and virtue through their actions. The meaning of Inspiration is derived from the Latin word inspiro
meaning “to breathe, blow on”.
Canon 4404
The sacrament of Inspiration comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Imagination, Act Two being the Act of Creation and Act Three being
the Act of Possession:
(i) The Act of Imagination as Act One is the inspiration to conceive some element, form; and
(ii) The Act of Creation as Act Two is the conversion of the imagination of some element or form into
some more meaningful and complete idea; and
(iii) The Act of Possession as Act Three is the fulfilment of the creation and its possession in the
temporal realm .
Art icle 148 - Forgiveness
Canon 4405
Forgiveness is the fifth of the seven (7) Key Sacraments also known as the Keys of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Forgiveness is the Key that unlocks the Living Virtue of Compassion. It is present in all
fourteen of the Cardinal Sacraments and specifically in the most sacred Apostolic Life Sacrament of
Adieu. The Sacrament of Forgiveness may also be granted and conferred on its own in accordance
with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4406
The purpose of the sacrament of Forgiveness is the most high celebration of Divine Benevolence and
Charity in the annulment of all perceived offense, difference or mistake, and any claimed punishment
or restitution. The meaning of Forgiveness is derived from two ancient Celtic words for meaning
“important, solemn” and géif meaning “give, grant, bestow, commit, devote, entrust”. Hence
Forgiveness literally means “an important or solemn gift, grant, devotion, trust”.
Canon 4407
The sacrament of Forgiveness comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Charity, Act Two being the Act of Benevolence and Act Three being
the Act of Annulment:
(i) The Act of Charity as Act One is the recognition of a genuine need for forgiveness, the good faith
of all parties and remorse for any previous fault; and
(ii) The Act of Benevolence as Act Two is the granting of credit and/or good will to off-set previous
injury or debt; and
(iii) The Act of Annulment as Act Three is the balancing of any injury or debt against the credit and/or
good will so that no obligation needs to be formed and all records are formally expunged.
Art icle 149 - Sat isfact ion
Canon 4408
Satisfaction is the sixth of the seven (7) Key Sacraments also known as the Keys of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Satisfaction is the Key that unlocks the Living Virtue of Cheerfulness. It is present in all
fourteen of the Cardinal Sacraments and specifically in the most sacred Apostolic Life Sacrament of
Resolution. The Sacrament of Satisfaction may also be granted and conferred on its own in
accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4409
The purpose of the sacrament of Satisfaction is the formal recognition of the fulfilment and
completion of any outstanding conditions and terms of an agreement recognized as possessing
sacred value and importance. The meaning of Satisfaction is derived from two latin words satis
meaning “enough, sufficient” and factio meaning “making, doing”. Hence Satisfaction literally means
“sufficient making or doing”.
Canon 4410
The sacrament of Satisfaction comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Condition, Act Two being the Act of Fulfilment and Act Three being the
Act of Completion:
(i) The Act of Condition as Act One is the existence of sufficient conditions for the fulfilment and
completion of some agreement; and
(ii) The Act of Fulfilment as Act Two is the formal recognition that sufficient conditions have officially
led to the fulfilment of the terms of some agreement; and
(iii) The Act of Completion as Act Three is the completion of any fiduciary obligations prior to the
proper transmittal of any residual to the proper parties upon the closure of the agreement.
Art icle 150 - Expirat ion
Canon 4411
Expiration is the seventh of the seven (7) Key Sacraments also known as the Keys of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Expiration is the Key that unlocks the Living Virtue of Wisdom. It is present in all
fourteen of the Cardinal Sacraments and specifically in the most sacred Apostolic Life Sacrament of
Remembrance. The Sacrament of Expiration may also be granted and conferred on its own in
accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4412
The purpose of the sacrament of Expiration is the formal remittance and transfer of all Rights to a
person, emancipating them of any and all obligations. The meaning of Expiration is derived from the
Latin word expiro meaning “to breath out, exhale, emit, to come to an end”.
Canon 4413
The sacrament of Expiration comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Conclusion, Act Two being the Act of Termination and Act Three being
the Act of Emancipation:
(i) The Act of Conclusion as Act One is the formal pronouncement of the end of some obligation,
performance, entity or agreement; and
(ii) The Act of Termination as Act Two is the liquidation of outstanding obligations, the balancing of
any debts against assets and the permanent dissolution of formal bonds and ties; and
(iii) The Act of Emancipation as Act Three is the release of any remaining assets and associated
bonds to previous fiduciary holders or beneficiaries.
5.3 Cardinal Sacraments
Canon 4414
The Cardinal Sacraments also known as Cardinalis Sacramenta, also known as “The Ways” are
fourteen(14) of the thirty three (33) sacred rites of the supremely sacred covenant Pactum De
Singularis Caelum instituted by the Divine Creator and entrusted to the Society of One Heaven and all
associated valid entities being Consecration, Offering, Matrimony, Union, Record, Penance, Oath,
Testimony, Investiture, Clemency, Sponsor, Convocation, Prescription and Promulgation.
Canon 4415
As ways, points, junctures and hinges for the actions of the Divine Creator and One Heaven they are
signs and gifts which express and strengthen the society and effect the sanctification of a community
and thus contribute in the greatest way to establish, strengthen, and manifest spiritual unity.
Canon 4416
Since the Cardinal Sacraments are the same for every faith and Society, it is only for the supreme
authority of the Society of One Heaven to approve or define the requirements for their validity and
what pertains to their licit celebration, administration, and reception and to the order to be observed
in their celebration.
Canon 4417
Sacred ministers cannot deny a Cardinal Sacraments to those who seek them at appropriate times,
are properly disposed, and are not prohibited by law from receiving them.
Canon 4418
All Celebrants, according to their respective ecclesiastical function, have the duty to take care that
those who seek a society sacraments are prepared to receive them by proper instruction, attentive
to the norms issued by competent authority.
Canon 4419
Since Cardinal Sacraments imprint a character, they cannot be repeated.
Canon 4420
If after completing a diligent inquiry a prudent doubt still exists whether one or more Cardinal
Sacrament were actually or validly conferred, they are to be conferred conditionally.
Canon 4421
In celebrating Cardinal Sacraments the liturgical books approved by competent authority are to be
observed faithfully; accordingly, no one is to add, omit, or alter anything in them on one’s own
authority.
Canon 4422
The Celebrant is to seek nothing for the administration of any society sacraments beyond the
offerings defined by competent authority, always taking care that the needy are not deprived of the
assistance of the sacraments because of poverty.
Art icle 152 - Consecrat ion
Canon 4423
Consecration is the first of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven.
The Sacrament of Consecration is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the
seven (7) Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Consecration is especially
present in the most sacred Apostolic Life Sacrament of Annunciation and Veneration representing the
first and the last. The Sacrament of Consecration may also be granted and conferred on its own in
accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4424
The purpose of the sacrament of Consecration is the solemn dedication to Divine purpose and
service a particular person, place, object or thing. The meaning of Consecration is derived from two
Latin words con meaning “with, together” and sacrare meaning “sacred”. Hence Consecration
literally means “with sacredness”.
Canon 4425
The sacrament of Consecration comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Conception, Act Two being the Act of Inception and Act Three being
the Act of Perfection:
(i) The Act of Conception as Act One is the formal conceiving, perceiving and naming of a particular
person, place, object or thing; and
(ii) The Act of Inception as Act Two is the beginning of the dedication to Divine purpose and service of
a particular person, place, object or thing; and
(iii) The Act of Perfection as Act Three is the completion of the dedication to Divine purpose and
service of a particular person, place, object or thing through circumscription.
Canon 4426
Consecration is an implicit sacrament and element of all Life Sacraments and may not be conducted
as a replacement or alternate sacrament to an established Sacrament identified as possessing the
quality of consecration.
Art icle 153 - Offering
Canon 4427
Offering, also known as Holy Offering is the second of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also
knownas the Ways of Heaven. The Sacrament of Offering is a way of sacred action unlocked through
the presence of the seven (7) Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Offering
may also be granted and conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated
approved liturgy.
Canon 4428
The most August sacrament of the Most Holy Offering, when the living recognize and respect the
death of plant and animal life prepared for a feast and its spiritual connection to all life and to the
Divine Creator also known as the Unique Collective Awareness, is the summit and source of all
respectful worship of life. When the Most Holy Offering in play, sport, song or dance, it is the sacrifice
of such energy dedicated to the cultural memory of our collective ancestors that nourishes the soul
of our community. The meaning of Offering is derived from the Latin word offero meaning “to present,
show, bring forward, to cause, to expose”.
Canon 4429
The sacrament of Offering comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Supplication, Act Two being the Act of Veneration and Act Three being the
Act of Sacrifice.
(i) The Act of Supplication as Act One is the giving of thanks and prayer to the Divine Creator for new
life, safety and protection; and
(ii) The Act of Veneration as Act Two is the recital of respect and deference to ancestors and
guardians and to the Divine Creator; and
(iii) The Act of Sacrifice as Act Three is the offering of one or more gifts and dedications to the Divine
Creator and to the ancestors and guardians.
Canon 4430
No higher order life form including but not limited to any Homo Sapien, animal or non-hydro carbon
higher order life form may be harmed or injured in any way by the sacrament of Offering
Art icle 154 - Mat rimony
Canon 4431
Matrimony is the third of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven.
The Sacrament of Offering is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven (7)
Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Matrimony may also be granted and
conferred in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4432
Matrimony is granted and administered when a man and a woman upon reaching majority choose and
consent of their own free will to sanctify their union through a registered divine matrimonial covenant
in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The sacrament of Matrimony may
only be bestowed once. The meaning of Matrimony is derived from the Latin word matrimonium
meaning “matrimony”.
Canon 4433
The sacrament of Matrimony comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Betrothal, Act Two being the Act of Wedding and Act Three being the
Act of Consummation:
(i) The Act of Betrothal as Act One is the formal promise and bond of proposed matrimony; and
(ii) The Act of Wedding as Act Two is the formal ritual celebrating Matrimonial Vows; and
(iii) The Act of Consummation as Act Three is the first act of intimate relations.
Art icle 155 - Union
Canon 4434
Union is the fourth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Union is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven (7) Keys of
Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Union may also be granted and conferred on its
own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4435
Union is granted and administered when a couple of the same gender or a man and woman upon
reaching majority choose and consent of their own free will to validate their union through a
registration and covenant of trust in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy.
While a man or a woman may enter into more than one Union. A man and a woman may only be
bestowed the sacrament of Holy Matrimony once. The meaning of Union is derived from the Latin
word unus/uni meaning “sole, single, only, one and the same”.
Canon 4436
The sacrament of Union comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order: Act
One being the Act of Offer, Act Two being the Act of Agreement and Act Three being the Act of
Execution:
(i) The Act of Offer as Act One is the formal promise and bond of proposed agreement; and
(ii) The Act of Agreement as Act Two is the validation of two or more parties to common promises
and obligations; and
(iii) The Act of Execution as Act Three is the sign, seal and delivery of the completion and registration
of the formal Act of Agreement .
Art icle 156 - Record
Canon 4437
Record is the fifth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Record is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven (7) Keys
of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Record may also be granted and conferred
on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4438
Record is granted and administered upon the formal recording of the name and details of a particular
object or concept in the Great Register and Public Record of One Heaven or associated Great
Registers under Oath and evidence in accordance with these canons and associated approved
liturgy. The meaning of Record is derived from two Latin words re meaning “property, act, quality”
and cordis meaning "heart (body), mind (thought and reason" and spirit (soul)". Hence Record literally
means “property (present) of body, mind and spirit”.
Canon 4439
The sacrament of Record comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Claim, Act Two being the Act of Registration and Act Three being the Act of
Acknowledgment of Registration:
(i) The Act of Claim as Act One is the formal instrument of claim; and
(ii) The Act of Registration as Act Two is the proper registration of a perfected claim; and
(iii) The Act of Acknowledgment as Act Three is the remittance and receipt of the proper registration
and recording .
Art icle 157 - Penance
Canon 4440
Penance is the sixth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven.
The Sacrament of Penance is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven (7)
Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Penance may also be granted and
conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4441
In the sacrament of penance, the faithful who confess their offences to a legitimate minister, are sorry
for them and intent to reform themselves obtain from the Divine Creator, also known as Unique
Collective Awareness the absolution imparted by the same minister forgiveness for the offences
committed and at the same time are reconciled with the community they have wounded by their
offences. The meaning of Penance is derived from the Latin words penitus meaning “honest self
examination, to look inside deeply, thoroughly”.
Canon 4442
The sacrament of Penance comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Indictment, Act Two being the Act of Reckoning and Act Three being the Act
of Reconciliation:
(i) The Act of Indictment as Act One is the formal written accusation on behalf of one party outlining
the accusations against another; and
(ii) The Act of Reckoning as Act Two is the investigation, audit and arguments presented by the party
making an accusation and the defense by the accused; and
(iii) The Act of Reconciliation as Act Three is the reconciliation between all parties such that a
decision and result has been reached.
Art icle 158 - Oat h
Canon 4443
Oath is the seventh of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven. The
Sacrament of Oath is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven (7) Keys of
Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Oath may also be granted and conferred on its
own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4444
The Sacrament of Holy Oath is granted and conveyed upon the pronouncement of a valid oath in
accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Oath is derived from
the ancient Celtic word oath meaning “solemn vocalized swearing or appeal to deity in witness of
truth or promise”.
Canon 4445
The sacrament of Oath comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order: Act
One being the Act of Invocation, Act Two being the Act of Articulation and Act Three being the Act of
Obsignation:
(i) The Act of Invocation as Act One is the formal call and prayer to the Divine Creator and all of
Heaven for assistance, guidance and witness; and
(ii) The Act of Articulation as Act Two is the formal expression of the promise and nature of the oath;
and
(iii) The Act of Obsignation as Act Three is the formal sign, seal and delivery of a memorialization of
the oath .
Art icle 159 - Test imony
Canon 4446
Testimony is the eighth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven.
The Sacrament of Testimony is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven
(7) Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Testimony may also be granted and
conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4447
The sacrament of Testimony is granted and bestowed upon a solemn attestation under oath as to
the truth of a matter in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning
of Testimony is derived from the Latin word testimonium meaning “sworn evidence, vocalized proof
before judicial authority”.
Canon 4448
The sacrament of Testimony comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Confirmation, Act Two being the Act of Evidence and Act Three being
the Act of Oration.
Art icle 160 - Invest it ure
Canon 4449
Investiture is the ninth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven.
The Sacrament of Investiture is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven
(7) Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Investiture may also be granted
and conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4450
The purpose of the sacrament of Investiture is the formal bestowal or presentation of a possessory
or prescriptive right of Office to an incumbent including taking possession of the insignia of Office. The
meaning of Investiture is derived from the late Latin word investire meaning “to clothe in, cover,
surround”, itself from two earlier Latin words in meaning “in, into” and vestire meaning “to dress,
clothe, garments”.
Canon 4451
The sacrament of Investiture comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Petition, Act Two being the Act of Selection and Act Three being the
Act of Election:
(i) The Act of Petition as Act One is the application to be selected and elected to Office; and
(ii) The Act of Selection as Act Two is the selection of candidates to office; and
(iii) The Act of Election as Act Three is the election and investiture ceremonies of those selected to
office .
Art icle 161 - Clemency
Canon 4452
Clemency is the tenth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven.
The Sacrament of Clemency is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven
(7) Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Clemency may also be granted and
conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4453
The purpose of the sacrament of Clemency is the formal is the blessing of charity and the formal
remittance and discharge of part or all of an offence as well as any prescribed punishment in
accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Clemency is derived
from the Latin word Clemens meaning “mild, gentle, merciful”.
Canon 4454
The sacrament of Clemency comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Appeal, Act Two being the Act of Review and Act Three being the Act of
Discharge:
(i) The Act of Appeal as Act One is the formal calling for an adjudication in respect of an unresolved
matter; and
(ii) The Act of Review as Act Two is the review of the appeal; and
(iii) The Act of Discharge as Act Three is the formal discharge of some, part or all of the appeal or
accusations found against a person .
Art icle 162 - Sponsor
Canon 4455
Sponsor is the eleventh of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of Heaven.
The Sacrament of Sponsor is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of the seven (7)
Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Sponsor may also be granted and
conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4456
The purpose of the sacrament of Sponsor is the formal recognition and endorsement of a person
pledging themselves as assurance and security for the obligations of another in accordance with
these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Sponsor is derived from the Latin
word sponsio meaning “promise, guarantee, surety”.
Canon 4457
The sacrament of Sponsor comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Surety, Act Two being the Act of Security and Act Three being the Act of
Endorsement.
(i) The Act of Surety as Act One is the promise of one to pay or perform on behalf of another; and
(ii) The Act of Security as Act Two is the security of property as underwriting; and
(iii) The Act of Endorsement as Act Three is the formal sign, seal and delivery of sign of the sponsor.
Art icle 163 - Convocat ion
Canon 4458
Convocation is the twelfth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of
Heaven. The Sacrament of Convocation is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of
the seven (7) Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Convocation may also be
granted and conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4459
The purpose of the sacrament of Convocation is the formal summons to attendance the members of
a sacred body in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of
Convocation is derived from the Latin word convoco meaning “to call meeting of”.
Canon 4460
The sacrament of Convocation comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Summons, Act Two being the Act of Attendance and Act Three being
the Act of Assembly:
(i) The Act of Summons as Act One is the formal call to all members of a parliament to come to
parliament at an allotted time and place; and
(ii) The Act of Attendance as Act Two is the demand that all who are elected to office in the
parliament are are to attend parliament; and
(iii) The Act of Assembly as Act Three is the assembly of parliament, including the opening and closing
ceremonies.
Art icle 164 - Prescript ion
Canon 4461
Prescription is the thirteenth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of
Heaven. The Sacrament of Prescription is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of
the seven (7) Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Prescription may also be
granted and conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4462
The purpose of the sacrament of Prescription is the formal blessing of a decree or judgment issued
by a valid minister or one possessing the proper level of authority in accordance with these canons
and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Prescription is derived from the Latin word
praescribo meaning “to write first, to direct, command, dictate, describe”.
Canon 4463
The sacrament of Prescription comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Decree, Act Two being the Act of Judgment and Act Three being the
Act of Writ.
Art icle 165 - Rescript ion
Canon 4464
Rescript ion is the fourteenth of the fourteen (14) Cardinal Sacraments also known as the Ways of
Heaven. The Sacrament of Rescription is a way of sacred action unlocked through the presence of
the seven (7) Keys of Heaven within the Sacrament itself. The Sacrament of Rescription may be
granted and conferred on its own in accordance with these Canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4465
The purpose of the sacrament of Rescription is opinion, answer or judgment promulgated by an
Official Person, subject to the limits of their authority, in accordance with associated approved liturgy
and the procedures of their Office.
Canon 4466
The sacrament of Promulgation comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Pronunciation, Act Two being the Act of Imprimation and Act Three
being the Act of Publication.
5.4 Apostolic Sacraments
Canon 4467
The Apostolic Life Sacraments, also known as Sacramenta Vitae Apostolicae, also known as “The
Means” are the twelve (12) of the thirty three (33) sacred rites of the supremely sacred covenant
Pactum De Singularis Caelum instituted by the Divine Creator and entrusted to the Society of One
Heaven and all associated valid entities being Annunciation, Natal, Divinus, Adventus, Epinoia, Genius,
Beau Ideal, Haga Sofia, Adieu, Resolution, Remembrance and Veneration.
Canon 4468
All members of One Heaven are entitled to receive the full benefits of all twelve (12) Life Sacraments,
whether living or deceased either upon the anniversaries prescribed for the conferral of a sacrament
or upon proof of majority and competency for the specific Life Sacraments of Epinoia, Genius, Beau
Ideal and Haga Sofia.
Canon 4469
A member who has not first received the prior Life Sacrament, cannot be admitted validly to receiving
the subsequent sacrament.
Canon 4470
As actions of the Divine Creator and One Heaven the Life Sacraments are signs and means which
express and strengthen the faith, render worship to the Divine and effect the sanctification of
humanity and thus contribute in the greatest way to establish, strengthen, and manifest ecclesiastical
unity. Accordingly, in the celebration of the sacraments the sacred ministers and the other members
of the faithful must use the greatest veneration and necessary diligence.
Canon 4471
Since the Life Sacraments are the same for every Homo Sapien, living or deceased, it is only for the
supreme authority of the Society of One Heaven to approve or define the requirements for their
validity and what pertains to their licit celebration, administration, and reception and to the order to
be observed in their celebration.
Canon 4472
Since the Life Sacraments imprint a character, they cannot be repeated.
Canon 4473
If after completing a diligent inquiry a prudent doubt still exists whether one or more Life Sacrament
were actually or validly conferred, they are to be conferred conditionally.
Canon 4474
All Life Sacraments are conferred either by Ordinary or Extraordinary condition. Ordinary condition is
when a Life Sacrament is conferred by one who is invested with the powers of Administratum, Officium
or Imperium. Extraordinary condition is when a Life Sacrament is conferred by one who is invested
with the powers of Magisterium or Visium or an ordained sacred minister.
Canon 4475
Sacred Celebrants cannot deny the sacraments to those who seek them at appropriate times, are
properly disposed, and are not prohibited by law from receiving them. All ministers, according to their
respective ecclesiastical function, have the duty to take care that those who seek the sacraments
are prepared to receive them by proper instruction, attentive to the norms issued by competent
authority.
Canon 4476
In celebrating the sacraments by extraordinary condition, the liturgical books approved by competent
authority are to be observed faithfully; accordingly, no one is to add, omit, or alter anything in them
on one’s own authority. In celebrating the sacraments by ordinary condition, only those things
required for the validity of the sacrament must be observed.
Canon 4477
The Celebrant is to seek nothing for the administration of the sacraments beyond the offerings
defined by competent authority, always taking care that the needy are not deprived of the
assistance of the sacraments because of poverty.
Art icle 167 - Annunciat ion
Canon 4478
Annunciation is the first of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”,
“The Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Annunciation is granted and conferred exclusively to an
expectant mother and their living unborn child according to these canons and associated approved
liturgy upon evidence of pregnancy from the 50th day to before birth.
Canon 4479
The purpose of the sacrament of Annunciation is the recognition of the ancient tradition of celebrating
the announcement of pregnancy and prayers for the safe passage of the baby to full term and the
formal bestowal of consecration and protection of the unborn child. The meaning of Annunciation is
derived from two Latin words “an” meaning“ certain” and “nuntio” meaning “report, tell”.
Canon 4480
The sacrament of Annunciation comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Conception, Act Two being the Act of Inception and Act Three being
the Act of Perfection.
Canon 4481
Upon the estimated fiftieth day of pregnancy and before the one hundredth day, the expectant
mother, or nominated guardian shall appoint a Herald by extraordinary condition to formally make
known the news of the pregnancy to friends, family and the community. The promulgation of the news
represents the Heraldic Prayer which represents the moment of conferral of the sacrament and the
appointment of a Divine Guardian Angel to watch over the unborn child and the safety of the mother
until birth.
Canon 4482
Should no Herald be appointed by the mother or nominated guardian and the Heraldic Prayer not be
instanced, then by ordinary condition a Divine Guardian Angel shall be automatically appointed by the
powers of Heaven to watch over her unborn child and her safety not later than one hundred and fifty
days since the beginning of the pregnancy.
Canon 4483
In the instance that the embryo and then fetus were not successfully delivered to full term, the
sacrament of Natal may be conferred upon all who have received the sacrament of Annunciation.
Art icle 168 - Nat al
Canon 4484
Natal is second of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”, “The
Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Natal is granted and conferred to a new born Homo Sapien child
at the final stage of birth or within 90 days of being born in accordance with these canons and
associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4485
The purpose of the sacrament of Natal is the formal bestowal or presentation of a possessory or
prescriptive right of Office to an incumbent including taking possession of the insignia of Office. The
meaning of Natal is derived from the Latin word “nasci” meaning “to be born”.
Canon 4486
The birth of a child into flesh also represents the birth of a True Trust through the conveyance of
divinity, also known as Divine right of use from the Divine Personality of the spirit of the child with the
flesh of the child the eventual rightful trustee of the True Trust upon age of majority. Until such time,
the Divine Person of the child grants temporary guardian powers to the parent or parents, or those
properly designated as immediate carer.
Canon 4487
The sacrament of Natal comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order: Act
One being the Act of Supplication, Act Two being the Act of Veneration and Act Three being the Act of
Offering.
Canon 4488
Ordinary Natal is conferred by the delivery of a child without the presence of an ordained minister of
a valid religion and through the witness of the birth by two or more people apart from the mother.
Canon 4489
Extraordinary Natal is conferred by the delivery of a child in the presence of an ordained minister of a
valid religion and through the pouring of a few drops of water upon the head of the infant.
Canon 4490
The fraudulent and inferior sacrament of Baptism is forbidden and has no lawful effect.
Canon 4491
No documents, oral promises or any other inferred agreement by the parents of a new born baby to
the hospital, or competent civil authority or by implication to any Religion or Cult can in anyway
diminish the rights of the parents as Guardians unless by willing and deliberate behaviour they have
been legally proven through a formal hearing to be incompetent as trustees and guardians of their
new born child.
Canon 4492
The sacrament of Natal negates the presumptions, validity and existence of any claimed Cestui Que
Vie Trusts or any other curses, spells and unlawful conveyances by any Religion, Cult or their agents.
Canon 4493
In accordance with Divine Law and the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, if a fetus
having received the sacrament of Annunciation dies before being borne, then this unique Divine
Immortal Spirit shall be fully entitled to receive the sacrament of Natal within 90 days of what
otherwise would have been its borne day and all Life Sacraments thereafter at their appointed time.
Canon 4494
In accordance with Divine Law and the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, the
mother or father or next of living kin of any fetus that failed to be borne, yet was not previously
granted the sacrament of Annunciation may apply for the special ceremony of Life Sacraments where
all sacraments are granted beginning with Annunciation to the sacrament representing the same age
as if the fetus had been borne and lived to the present day.
Art icle 169 - Divinus
Canon 4495
Divinus is the third of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”, “The
Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Divinus is granted and administered within 30 days of the 2nd
birthday of a child that has received the Sacrament of Natal in accordance with these canons and
associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4496
The purpose of the sacrament of Divinus is to officially recognize the transition of a baby to a child
and their commencement of valid organized learning systems of the community. The child is now
welcomed into the tribe and protection is given in exchange for the child understanding that it is time
to learn. The meaning of Divinus is derived from the Latin word divinus meaning “divine of the gods,
prophetic, superhuman, excellent”.
Canon 4497
The sacrament of Divinus comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Notification, Act Two being the Act of Classification and Act Three being the
Act of Valuation.
Canon 4498
In accordance with Divine Law and the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, if a child
having received the sacrament of Natal dies at or prior to the age of two (2), then this unique Divine
Immortal Spirit shall be fully entitled to receive the sacrament of Divinus within 60 days of 2 years
since being borne and all Life Sacraments thereafter at their appointed time.
Canon 4499
In accordance with Divine Law and the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, the
mother or father or next of living kin of any child that died at or prior to the age of two (2) yet was
not previously granted the sacrament of Natal may apply for the special ceremony of Life
Sacraments where all sacraments are granted beginning with Annunciation to the sacrament
representing the same age as if the child had lived and grown up to the present day.
Art icle 170 - Advent us
Canon 4500
Adventus is the fourth of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”, “The
Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Adventus is granted and administered within 30 days of the 12th
birthday of a child that has received the sacrament of Divinus in accordance with these canons and
associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4501
The purpose of the sacrament of Adventus is the formal bestowal or presentation of a possessory or
prescriptive right of Office to an incumbent including taking possession of the insignia of Office. The
meaning of Adventus is derived from the Latin word adventus meaning “arrival, approach”.
Canon 4502
The sacrament of Adventus comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Intent, Act Two being the Act of Purpose and Act Three being the Act of
Delivery.
Canon 4503
The sacrament of Adventus is the celebration of becoming an adolescent. It is the promise and
commitment to one’s own family and society and to its just laws.
Canon 4504
A condition of the sacrament of Adventus is that the child knowingly and willingly consents to learning,
to self improvement, to essential virtue and to accepting responsibility for one’s own actions.
Canon 4505
In accordance with Divine Law and the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, if a child
having received the sacrament of Divinus dies before being the age of twelve (12), then this unique
Divine Immortal Spirit shall be fully entitled to receive the sacrament of Adventus within 60 days of 12
years since being borne.
Canon 4506
In accordance with Divine Law and the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, the
mother or father or next of living kin of any child that died prior to the age of twelve (12) yet was not
previously granted the sacrament of Divinus may apply for the special ceremony of Life Sacraments
where all sacraments are granted beginning with Annunciation to the sacrament representing the
same age as if the child had lived and grown up to the present day.
Art icle 171 - Epinoia
Canon 4507
Epinoia is the fifth of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”, “The
Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Epinoia is granted and administered within 30 days of the 21st
birthday of a young adult in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy
Canon 4508
The purpose of the sacrament of Epinoia is the formal bestowal or presentation of a possessory or
prescriptive right of Office to an incumbent including taking possession of the insignia of Office. The
meaning of Epinoia is derived from the ancient Greek word “epinioa” meaning literally “thinking on a
thing” and to the Gnostics/Nazarenes meant “knowing (God) through intuition and direct revelation”.
Canon 4509
The sacrament of Epinoia comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Consent, Act Two being the Act of Covenant and Act Three being the Act of
Binding.
Canon 4510
A condition of Epinoia is that the youth knowingly and willingly consents to dedicating their life to
continuous self improvement and virtue and to contributing to the benefit and improvement of their
community and society.
Canon 4511
In accordance with Divine Law and the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, if a
teenager having received the sacrament of Adventus dies before being the age of twenty one (21),
then this unique Divine Immortal Spirit shall be fully entitled to receive the sacrament of Epinoia within
30 days of 21 years since being borne and all Life Sacraments thereafter at their appointed time.
Canon 4512
In accordance with Divine Law and the most sacred covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum, the
mother or father or next of living kin of any child that died prior to the age of twenty-one (21) yet was
not previously granted the sacrament of Adventus may apply for the special ceremony of Life
Sacraments where all sacraments including Epinoia are granted beginning with Annunciation to the
sacrament representing the same age as if the child had lived and grown up to the present day.
Art icle 172 - Genius
Canon 4513
Genius is sixth of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”, “The Twelve
Apostles” and “The Means”. Genius is granted and administered within in accordance with 30 days of
the 33rd birthday of an adult in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4514
The purpose of the sacrament of Genius is the formal bestowal or presentation of a possessory or
prescriptive right of Office to an incumbent including taking possession of the insignia of Office in
accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Genius is derived
from the Latin word genius meaning “guardian spirit, inclination, talent”.
Canon 4515
The sacrament of Genius comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order:
Act One being the Act of Imagination, Act Two being the Act of Creation and Act Three being the Act
of Possession.
Canon 4516
Genius is the celebration of the point of transition from Youthhood to Adulthood cycle of life. It is the
celebration of becoming an adult.
Art icle 173 - Beau Ideal
Canon 4517
Beau Ideal is the seventh of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”,
“The Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Beau Ideal is granted and administered within 30 days of
the 44th birthday of an adult in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4518
The purpose of the sacrament of Beau Ideal is the formal bestowal or presentation of a possessory
or prescriptive right of Office to an incumbent including taking possession of the insignia of Office in
accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Beau Ideal is derived
from the Old French phrase beau ideal meaning “the concept of perfect beauty, an ideal model”.
Canon 4519
The sacrament of Beau Ideal comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Offer, Act Two being the Act of Agreement and Act Three being the
Act of Enactment.
Canon 4520
Beau Ideal is the celebration of the point of transition from Adulthood to Seniorhood. It recognizes the
experience and contribution of older adults while they are still active members of their society.
Art icle 174 - Haga Sofia
Canon 4521
Haga Sofia is the eighth of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”,
“The Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Haga Sofia is granted and administered within 30 days of
the 66th birthday of a senior in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4522
The purpose of the sacrament of Haga Sofia is the formal bestowal or presentation of a possessory
or prescriptive right of Office to an incumbent including taking possession of the insignia of Office in
accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Haga Sofia is
derived from two ancient Greek words haga sofia meaning “holy wisdom”.
Canon 4523
The sacrament of Haga Sofia comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Petition, Act Two being the Act of Selection and Act Three being the
Act of Election.
Canon 4524
An enlightened society venerates its elders, protects them and seeks their counsel and wisdom.
Haga sofia is the celebration of the point of transition from Seniorhood to Elderhood. It is the
celebration of becoming an elder.
Art icle 175 - Adieu
Canon 4525
Adieu is the ninth of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”, “The
Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Adieu is granted and administered within six months of likely
death in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4526
The purpose of the sacrament of Adieu is as rites of forgiveness and cleansing to an incumbent in
accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Adieu is derived from
the Old French word adieu meaning “I commend you to God”.
Canon 4527
The sacrament of Adieu comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in order: Act
One being the Act of Charity, Act Two being the Act of Benevolence and Act Three being the Act of
Annulment of Injuries.
Canon 4528
Dying with dignity is a fundamental determination of an enlightened society. Adieu is a celebration
that enables those people who have some time before the point of death to seek resolution and
peace before death. Because physical disease includes to some degree the deterioration of the
conscious brain, it is also appropriate as a ceremony earlier in the process than later.
Art icle 176 - Resolut ion
Canon 4529
Resolution is the tenth of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”, “The
Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Resolution is granted and administered within one day of
imminent death in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4530
The purpose of the sacrament of Resolution is the formal final (last) rites of bestowal or presentation
of a possessory or prescriptive right to an incumbent in accordance with these canons and
associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Resolution is derived from two Latin words re meaning
“property, act, quality” and solutio meaning “unbinding, payment”. Hence Resolution literally means
“the action or quality of unbinding/freeing of all debts”.
Canon 4531
The sacrament of Resolution comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Condition, Act Two being the Act of Fulfilment and Act Three being the
Act of Completion.
Canon 4532
Resolution is the special celebration of blessing and cleansing to help an individual in the final stages
of death to find a point of peace and resolution to their life in the hope of evoking the care of other
minds already crossed to help guide the person safely.
Art icle 177 - Remembrance
Canon 4533
Remembrance is the eleventh of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The
Twelve”, “The Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Remembrance is granted and administered after
death and prior to the sacrament of Veneration and the burial or disposal of the body in accordance
with these canons and associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4534
The purpose of the sacrament of Remembrance is the formal funerary rites to an incumbent in
accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of Remembrance is
derived from two Latin words re meaning “property, act, quality” and membrana meaning “skin, flesh,
parchment”. Hence Remembrance literally means “the actions, qualities of the departed flesh”.
Canon 4535
The sacrament of Remembrance comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Conclusion, Act Two being the Act of Termination of Flesh and Act
Three being the Act of Emancipation of Spirit.
Canon 4536
Remembrance is both the sacrament and ceremony that remembers the deceased, their life and
provides an opportunity for those in attendance to speak, celebrate and honor the memory of the
departed.
Art icle 178 - Venerat ion
Canon 4537
Veneration is the twelth of the twelve (12) Apostolic Life Sacraments also known as “The Twelve”,
“The Twelve Apostles” and “The Means”. Veneration is granted and administered by a valid Minister
following death and the sacrament of Remembrance in accordance with these canons and
associated approved liturgy.
Canon 4538
The purpose of the sacrament of Veneration is a formal rite of blessing and remembrance to an
incumbent in accordance with these canons and associated approved liturgy. The meaning of
Veneration is derived from the Latin word venere/venert meaning “to regard with respect, reverence,
or heartfelt deference”.
Canon 4539
The sacrament of Veneration comprises the completion of three separate and deliberate Acts in
order: Act One being the Act of Conception, Act Two being the Act of Inception and Act Three being
the Act of Perfection.
VI. Institution
6.1 Institution
Canon 4540
An Institution, also known as Religious Institution is the term used to define the total aggregate of
legally constituted orders, colleges, churches, trusts, corporate bodies or entities of a particular
Religion or Cult as a single legal entity, whether or not such a singular legal entity physically exists.
Canon 4541
By definition, there may be only one (1) Religious Institution for a particular Religion or Cult. Any legal,
or jurisdictional requirements or design that enables a Religion or Cult to be treated as multiple and
distinct Institutions shall have no force or effect over these Canons.
Canon 4542
No Religion or Cult may legitimately claim higher or greater authority than One Heaven. Therefore, all
Institutions are subject to the Supreme Authority and Jurisdiction of the Society of One Heaven and
associated valid entities.
Canon 4543
No Religion or Cult may legitimately claim higher or greater land and property rights than the Society
of One Heaven. Therefore, all claims of real property and property in general by Institutions are
subject to the Supreme Authority and Jurisdiction of the Society of One Heaven and associated valid
entities.
Canon 4544
The deed, instrument or rules of incorporation of an Institution is invalid unless it conforms to these
canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum.
Art icle 180 - Church
Canon 4545
A Church is a formal element of a type of Religious Institution representing one or more
constituted Parishes of Congregations of faithful administering a particular Sanctuary and place of
worship and whose spiritual care and teaching is entrusted to a properly appointed Priest, Clergy or
Minister in accord with these Canons.
Canon 4546
The word Church is a term first invented in the English language during the 16th Century to describe
(1) a place of worship; or (2) a group of people that attend a place of worship; (3) or the liturgy,
service and rituals performed during worship; and (4) the aggregate of the organization of a
particular Religion. The word "Church" is an ideographic word using the letters "Ch" surrounding the
ancient word "ur" symbolizing both an enclosed sacred vessel or cradle and a named place or city.
Canon 4547
When used in a formal sense of describing a juridic person, a Church is a certain constituted
community of faithful possessing a particular Temple and Sanctuary and whose pastoral care is
entrusted to a properly appointed Priest, or Cleric or Minister in accord with these Canons.
Canon 4548
As the concept of a Universal Church or a land mass or country being a “Church” is in direct
contradiction with these Canons, such claims and concepts are automatically null and void from the
beginning.
Art icle 181 - Order
Canon 4549
An Order is the term used to define a sub branch of a Religion or Cult, distinct from other organs
colleges, churches, trusts, corporate bodies, entities and institutions according to its instrument of
formation, purpose, by-laws, geographic region and activities.
Canon 4550
An Order is not a valid Order unless it conforms to these canons and the most sacred Covenant
Pactum de Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4551
A valid Order may be further subdivided into geographic subdivisions according to its hierarchy as
defined by its deed or instrument of formation.
Canon 4552
As a Cult by definition seeks to diminish and corrupt knowledge, a Cult is forbidden to establish,
operate or control Orders in areas where knowledge is a crucial component to the effective delivery
of service such as health, education and sciences.
Canon 4553
Any Cult found to be operating an Order in an area where knowledge is a crucial component
immediately forfeits the right to continue ownership and control of such services and they must be
surrendered to the appropriate Ucadian Society. Where a Cult refuses to surrender institutions it is
not permitted to operate, then it is permissible to seek enforcement to make sure such property and
services are properly and lawfully ceded.
Art icle 182 - Hierarchy
Canon 4554
Hierarchy is the organizational structure within a particular Religion or Cult whereby it is clear the
relationship, obligations and lines of authority between various Offices, Positions, Orders and
Institutes.
Canon 4555
A Hierarchy is not valid unless it conforms to these canons and the most sacred Covenant Pactum de
Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4556
All valid Hierarchies may be defined as a unique combination of Orders, Institutions, Offices and
Positions:
(i) An Order is a sub branch of a Religion or Cult, distinct from other organs and institutions according
to its instrument of formation, purpose, by-laws, geographic region and activities; and
(ii) An Institution is an aggregate, college or entity of a Religion or Cult, distinct from an Order,
established at a particular location and dedicated to one primary purpose of service to members
and the public at large including (but not limited to) education, aged care, health, palliative care,
fitness and welfare, emergency housing, emergency relief and rehabilitation; and
(iii) An Office is a type of trust of responsibility holding certain ecclesiastical powers, obligations and
authority within a Religion or Cult as defined by its by-laws; and
(iv) A Position is a specific instance of an Office conveyed within or outside of an Order or Institution
so that each Position is Unique.
Canon 4557
No Religion or Cult may keep its Hierarchy secret, nor fail to fully disclose the most senior members
of the organization. A Religion or Cult that refuses to fully disclose its entire Hierarchy is by definition
a Secret Organization and therefore subject to being banned, forbidden and stripped of any property
and protection of the law.
Canon 4558
No Religion or Cult may claim its Hierarchy to be greater or higher than any Hierarchy and structures
defined by these canons. Therefore any claim by any religion or cult of a higher or greater hierarchy
than these canons is automatically null and void from the beginning.
Canon 4559
The extent of authority of a member or official of a Religion or Cult only extends to the limits of
Jurisdiction of the Religion or Cult in accordance with these canons.
Art icle 183 - Head
Canon 4560
The Head of a Religion or Cult is its highest primary representative and head. If a Religion or Cult be
structured where more than one man or woman is considered leader of equal status then the
aggregate is considered the Head.
Canon 4561
No Head or Leader of a Religion or Cult may legitimately claim higher or greater authority than One
Heaven. Therefore, all Heads and Leaders of Religions and Cults are subject to the Supreme Authority
and Jurisdiction of the Society of One Heaven and associated valid entities.
Canon 4562
No Head or Leader of a Religion or Cult may legitimately claim to be a God, or the exclusive and sole
spokesperson for Divine will. When a Leader expresses such false and absurd claims, they
automatically cease to possess any valid authority.
Canon 4563
Any Head or Leader of a Religion or Cult that advocates violence and terror in the name of the Divine
Creator is unworthy to be known as a Leader and automatically is excommunicated from any rights of
authority.
Art icle 184 - Parish
Canon 4564
A Parish is a constituted ecclesiastical and civil administrative sub-division of a Church, distinguished
by certain territorial limits defining the domicile and location of a Congregation, a Sanctuary and
place of worship directed by a properly appointed Priest, or Minister or Clergy as Head of the Parish
in accord with these Canons.
Canon 4565
The word Parish originates from the Latin word parochia, from Ancient Greek παρоικία (paroikia)
meaning “a foreign dwelling”) from παρά (para, “beside”) + οἶκος (oikos, “house”).
Canon 4566
A Parish is distinct from a Church and may be regarded as a separate juridic person and in civil law
may be viewed as an unincorporated association.
6.2 Property and Rights
Canon 4567
All Religions and Cults have the right to acquire, retain, administer and alienate goods and personal
property by lawful means in accordance with the sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum and
these canons.
Canon 4568
No Religion or Cult may acquire, retain, administer and alienate goods independently from competent
civil power.
Canon 4569
Under the supreme authority of the Society of One Heaven, ownership of all goods belongs to that
person which has acquired them legitimately.
Canon 4570
A Religion or Cult has the right to request from its members who have reached the age of majority
and reason that they provide their financial as well as moral support.
Canon 4571
All Religions and Cults are forbidden to hide their ownership and control of property and goods.
Where such fraud is exposed, a Religion or Cult automatically forfeits such property and goods.
Canon 4572
By virtue of primacy, governance and right, the Society of One Heaven is the supreme administrator
and steward of all ecclesiastical property and goods.
Canon 4573
No Religion or Cult, including all its subsidiaries as one, may ever own, possess or control directly or
indirectly more than one twentieth of the property and goods of a community, region, state or nation.
Canon 4574
Any Religion or Cult that owns, possesses or controls directly or indirectly more than one twentieth of
the property and goods of a community, region, state or nation is compelled to immediately
surrender without charge such title and property to the benefit of the community as a whole.
Art icle 186 - Right s
Canon 4575
The Rights of any Religion or Cult are those bestowed upon it by virtue of its conformity with the most
sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum in accordance with these canons.
Canon 4576
As the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum represents the highest Deed and the
Society of One Heaven represents the highest Trust, no Religion or Cult may claim higher rights.
Therefore all lawful Rights held by a Religion or Cult are those granted and bestowed by the Society
of One Heaven and no other.
Canon 4577
Any Claim of Right by a Religion or Cult that does not conform to the most sacred Covenant Pactum
De Singularis Caelum and these canons is automatically null and void having not legitimacy or force of
law.
Canon 4578
Any prior Claim of Right by a Religion or Cult that does not conform to the most sacred Covenant
Pactum De Singularis Caelum and these canons, including any trusts are hereby automatically
dissolved with all Rights lawfully returning to the Society of One Heaven.
Art icle 187 - Real Propert y
Canon 4579
All Religions and Cults have the right to acquire, retain and administer real property in the form of
land and associated fixed and immovable property pertaining to Orders and primary services
provided by the Religion or Cult. However, no Religions or Cult has the right to treat Homo Sapien or
higher order life as elements of real property.
Canon 4580
No Religion or Cult, including all its subsidiaries as one, may ever own, possess or control directly or
indirectly Real Property for the purpose of investment that does not represent actual real property of
a primary service.
Canon 4581
No Religion or Cult, including all its subsidiaries as one, may ever own, possess or control directly or
indirectly more than one fortieth (1/40th) of the property and goods of a community, region, state or
nation.
Canon 4582
Any Religion or Cult that owns, possesses or controls directly or indirectly more than one fortieth
(1/40th) of the real property of a community, region, state or nation is compelled to immediately
surrender without charge such title and property to the benefit of the community as a whole.
Art icle 188 - Pat ent s
Canon 4583
Religions and Cults do not have the right to own, hold, retain or administer patents or any other form
of intellectual property, directly or indirectly.
Canon 4584
Any Religion or Cult that owns, possesses or controls directly or indirectly certain patents, patent
registers, or other forms of intellectual property and systems hereby automatically forfeits such
property to the Society of One Heaven for the benefit of the community at large.
Art icle 189 - Trust s
Canon 4585
All Trusts, Enclosures and other legal devices of a similar function but different name owned,
controlled, administered or held by Religions and Cults having been formed prior to 2006 are hereby
terminated, with all property and goods hereby forfeited back to the Society of One Heaven unless
such property and goods comply with the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4586
In accordance with the Ritus Probatum promulgated on Ucadia
Time E8:Y3210:A35:S3:M12:D4 [12 June 2011] to all three Popes of the Roman Cult concerning the Trust
named Romanus Pontifex, this trust has been lawfully and completely, dissolved, terminated and
redistributed in accordance with the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum. Therefore,
the office of Roman Pontiff associated with the Trust has also been dissolved.
Canon 4587
As the Trust Romanus Pontifex has been lawfully dissolved, all claims over real property including but
not limited to land, sea, air, men, woman and other higher order life have also been dissolved.
Therefore, any trust, instrument, deed, system founded upon such presumptions are also null and
void.
Canon 4588
In accordance with the Ritus Probatum Regnum promulgated on Ucadia Time E8:Y3210:A48:S4:M17:D3
[15 August 2011] to all three Popes of the Roman Cult concerning the Trust named Aterni Regis, this
trust has been lawfully and completely, dissolved, terminated and redistributed in accordance with
the most sacred Covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum. Therefore, the office of Roman Pontiff
associated with the Trust has also been dissolved.
Canon 4589
As the Trust Aterni Regis has been lawfully dissolved, all claims over real and personal property
including but not limited to land, sea, air, men, woman and other higher order life have also been
dissolved. Therefore, any trust, instrument, deed, system founded upon such presumptions are also
null and void.
Canon 4590
In accordance with the Ritus Verum also known as “The 144 Truths” promulgated on Ucadia Time
E8:Y3210:A63:S4:M6:D5[31st October 2011] to all people throughout the world concerning the Trust
known as Convocation and all previous correspondence and writs, this trust and all trusts claimed by
the Roman Cult and Venetian nobility have been lawfully and completely, dissolved with all property
and rights conveyed to the Society of One Heaven.
6.3 Administration
Canon 4591
Administration is both the executive body of Officials who administer as well as the act of
administering the direction, public affairs, services rendered and duties of all office bearers within a
Religion or Cult.
Canon 4592
The executive administrative body of a Religion or Cult is always to be considered public officials
subject to the same obligations, due diligence and good conduct expected of all public officials.
Canon 4593
Financial Administration is the competent management of the financial affairs of a Religion or Cult,
including its property, goods, disclosure and reporting.
Canon 4594
All Religions and Cults are expected to be competent, forthright and transparent in the management
of their financial affairs, including the provision of full disclosure and reporting as prescribed by each
competent civil authority in each region in which they operate.
Canon 4595
As spiritual people, the leadership of all Religions and Cults are expected to demonstrate humility,
frugality, restraint and simplicity in the purchase and use of goods as well as payment of salaries and
wages.
Canon 4596
Leaders and ministers of Religions and Cults are expressly forbidden to use the financial resources of
the Religion or Cult for personal extravagant use including lavish residences, personal property and
lifestyle. Any leader or minister who demonstrates a lack of humility, frugality, restraint and simplicity
in the use of financial resources must be immediately stripped of any authority with the immediate
return of such property.
Canon 4597
Officers of Religions and Cults that are appointed as Trustees, Executors or Administrators are
obliged by their duties to conduct themselves with the highest integrity and competence. The failure
to perform fiduciary duties is no excuse for any official of a Religion or Cult unable to demonstrate
competent care and administration of the resources of a trust.
Art icle 191 - Financial Assist ance
Canon 4598
Financial Assistance is the provision of property, goods and other financial services by a Religion or
Cult to members and non members in need.
Canon 4599
As a key purpose that a Religion or Cult possessing property and goods is in order to provide
Financial Assistance, not less than one twelfth (1/12th) of goods and property must be provided for
financial assistance without charge each and every year.
Canon 4600
The failure of a Religion or Cult to provide not less than one twelfth (1/12th) of its total goods and
property for financial assistance each and every year is a grave injury against the purpose of such an
organization which shall result in the financial administration of all property and goods of the Religion
or Cult being placed in civilian administration.
Art icle 192 - Jurisdict ion
Canon 4601
Jurisdiction is the power and rights of officers of a Religion or Cult to exercise their authority in
hearing any controversy, adjudicating and issuing any sanctions; including the limits within which such
authority may be exercised.
Canon 4602
No Religion or Cult has greater jurisdiction than the Society of One Heaven. The Society of One
Heaven has innate and proper right to coerce all offending Religions and Cults with penal sanctions.
Canon 4603
Any accusation, adjudication or sanction brought against a person that is outside the limits of
jurisdiction of a particular officer of a Religion or Cult is automatically unlawful and therefore null and
void, having no force of law.
Art icle 193 - Accusat ion
Canon 4604
An Accusation is a formal complaint or charge of an alleged crime against a member of a particular
Religion or Cult, in accordance with its own statutes and rules.
Canon 4605
In the absence of formal approved rules and procedures of the Religion or Cult that clearly define the
alleged offence, an accusation is invalid.
Canon 4606
In the absence of a formal charge, detailing the alleged crime, including access to the rules and
statutes by which such a crime has been issued according to the approved rules and procedures of
the Religion or Cult, an accusation is invalid.
Canon 4607
An Accused must always be afforded the right to a free and fair defense upon the presumption of
innocent until proven guilty. Any presumption of guilt or denial of a fair hearing or trial automatically
negates the validity of the proceedings and any subsequent adjudication and alleged punishment.
Canon 4608
A valid Accusation is an accusation that is issued in accordance with these canons and the sacred
covenant Pactum De Singularis Caelum. An invalid Accusation is therefore null and void, having no
force of law.
Art icle 194 - Adjudicat ion
Canon 4609
Adjudication is the formal conduct of a hearing or a trial to judge the validity of an accusation against
a member of a particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 4610
A valid Adjudication is any hearing or trial conducted in accordance with these canons and the sacred
covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4611
There is no higher competent forum for adjudication than the Supreme Court of One Heaven.
Therefore, any claimed higher forum or court claimed by a Religion or Cult is automatically null and
void.
Canon 4612
The conduct of any hearing or trial must be in accordance with these canons and the principles of full
disclosure, innocence until proven guilty, fairness and justice.
Canon 4613
An Adjudication that is not in accordance with these canons and the sacred covenant Pactum de
Singularis Caelum is not valid and therefore is null and void, having no legitimate force of law.
Art icle 195 - Sanct ion
Canon 4614
A Sanction is a penalty issued in accordance with the by-laws of a particular Religion or Cult against
an adjudicated offence within its Jurisdiction.
Canon 4615
A valid sanction is any penalty issued by a Religion or Cult in accordance with these canons and the
sacred covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4616
A sanction is invalid and unlawful if it permits a penalty causing death, injury, physical or mental
torture or any other kind of punitive act considered barbaric and inhumane.
Canon 4617
A sanction that is not in accordance with these canons and the sacred covenant Pactum de Singularis
Caelum is not valid and therefore is null and void, having no legitimate force of law.
Art icle 196 - Punishment
Canon 4618
Punishment is the issuing of one or more penalties against a member of a Religion or Cult found guilty
through formal adjudication of one or more crimes against a particular Religion or Cult.
Canon 4619
A valid punishment is any non-lethal, non violent, non-torture penalty issued in accordance with these
canons and the sacred covenant Pactum de Singularis Caelum.
Canon 4620
A punishment that is not in accordance with these canons and the sacred covenant Pactum de
Singularis Caelum is not valid and therefore is null and void, having no legitimate force of law.
VII. Instruction
7.1 Instruction
Canon 4621
Instruction, also Ministry, is the action of instructing, teaching or furnishing others with information or
knowledge pertaining to the particular faith of a Religion or Cult.
Canon 4622
Instruction is distinguished from Teaching as Teaching is the education of members or non-members
about non-liturgical knowledge whereas Instruction is the education of members about the by-laws,
liturgy and information of the Religion or Cult.
Canon 4623
Instruction may not include education of information, doctrines and practices considered forbidden
and suppressed by these canons.
Art icle 198 - Cat echism
Canon 4624
Catechism is an instruction book or manual on one or more subjects, usually designed in question and
answer format summarizing the basic principles of a Religion or Cult.
Canon 4625
A Catechism may not include education of information, doctrines and practices considered forbidden
and suppressed by these canons.
Art icle 199 - Teaching
Canon 4626
Teaching is the education of knowledge to one or more people by a competent authority from a
Religion or Cult on one or more subjects not directly related to the rules and by-laws of the faith.
Canon 4627
Teaching is distinguished from Instruction as Instruction is the education of members about the by-
laws, liturgy and information of the Religion or Cult, whereas Teaching is the education of members or
non-members about non-liturgical knowledge.
Canon 4628
As a Cult by definition seeks to corrupt, hide and diminish knowledge, only Religions may lawfully
provide valid teaching.
Canon 4629
Education may not include education of information, doctrines and practices considered forbidden
and suppressed by these canons.